"First of all, bear in mind that the so-called U.N. police-action
in Korea, fought by the United States in which 150,000 of our sons were
murdered and maimed, was part of the plot; just as the undeclared by Congress
war in Vietnam in which our sons are dying is part of the plot; just as
the plot against Rhodesia and South Africa in which our sons will be dying
is part of the U.N. plot. However, the vitally important thing for all
Americans, all you mothers of the boys who died in Korea and are now dying
in Vietnam, to know is that our so-called leaders in Washington, who we
elected to safeguard our nation and our Constitution, are the betrayers
and that behind them are a comparatively small group of men whose sole-objective
is to enslave the whole world of humanity in their satanic-plot of one-world
government.
"Now in order to give you a very clear picture of this
satanic-plot, I will go back to its beginning, clear back in the middle
of the 18th century and name the men who put that plot into action and
then bring you down to the present - today's status of that plot. Now as
a matter of further intelligence, a term used by the FBI, let me clarify
the meaning of the expression "he is a liberal." The enemy, meaning the
one-world conspirators, have seized upon that word "liberal" as a cover-up
for their activities. It sounds so innocent and so humanitarian to be liberal.
Well, make sure that the person who calls himself a liberal or is described
as a liberal is not, in truth, a "red."
"Now then, this satanic-plot was launched back in the
1760's when it first came into existence under the name "Illuminati." This
Illuminati was organized by one Adam Weishaupt, born a Jew, who was converted
to Catholicism and became a Catholic priest, and then, at the behest of
the then newly-organized House of Rothschild, defected and organized the
Illuminati. Naturally, the Rothschilds financed that operation and every
war since then; beginning with the French Revolution; has been promoted
by the Illuminati operating under various names and guises. I say under
various names and guises because after the Illuminati was exposed and became
notorious, Weishaupt and his co-conspirators began to operate under various
other names. In the United States, immediately after World War I, they
set up what they called the "Council on Foreign Relations," commonly referred
to as the CFR, and this CFR is actually the Illuminati in the United States
and its hierarchy. The masterminds in control of the original Illuminati
conspirators, were foreigners, but to conceal that fact, most of them changed
their original family names to American sounding names. For example, the
true name of the Dillons, Clarence and Douglas Dillon (one Secretary of
the U.S. Treasury Department), is Laposky. I'll come back to all this later.
"There is a similar establishment of the Illuminati in
England operating under the name of the "British Institute of International
Affairs." (The Royal Institute of International
Affairs, actually) There are similar secret Illuminati organizations in
France, Germany, and other nations operating under different names and
all these organizations, including the CFR, continuously set up numerous
subsidiary or front-organizations that are infiltrated into every phase
of the various nations' affairs. But at all times, the operations of these
organizations were and are masterminded and controlled by the Internationalist
Bankers, they in turn were and are controlled by the Rothschilds. (One
of the prime agents in this control is through the International BAR Association
and it's splinter groups such as the America BAR Association. It is important
to note that there are BAR Associations in nearly every nation world wide
now, pushing the United Nations always. I do have a copy of the 1947 agreement
that the American BAR submitted which commits the BAR to support and promote
the U.N. throughout America. - David G.)
"One branch of the Rothschild family had financed Napoleon;
another branch of the Rothschilds financed Britain, Germany, and the other
nations in the Napoleonic wars.
"Immediately after the Napoleonic wars, the Illuminati
assumed that all the nations were so destitute and so weary of wars that
they'd be glad for any solution, so the Rothschild stooges set up what
they called the Congress in Vienna and at that meeting they tried to create
the first League of Nations, their first attempted one-world government,
on the theory that all the crowned heads of European governments were so
deeply in debt to them that they would willingly or unwillingly serve as
their stooges. But the Czar of Russia caught the stench of the plot and
completely torpedoed it. The enraged Nathan Rothschild, then the head of
the dynasty, vowed that some day he or his descendants would destroy the
Czar and his entire family, and his descendants did accomplish that very
threat in 1917. At this point, bear in mind
that the Illuminati was not set up to operate on a short-range basis. Normally
a conspirator of any type enters into a conspiracy with the expectation
of achieving his objective during his own lifetime. But that was not the
case with the Illuminati. True, they hoped to accomplish their objective
during their lifetime, but paraphrasing "The show must go on," the Illuminati
operates on the very long-range basis. Whether it will take scores of years
or even centuries, they have dedicated their descendants to keep the pot
boiling until they hope the conspiracy is achieved.
"Now, let's go back to the birth of the Illuminati. Adam
Weishaupt was a Jesuit-trained professor of canon law, teaching in Engelstock
University, when he defected from Christianity to embrace the luciferian
conspiracy. It was in 1770 that the professional money-lenders, the then
recently organized House of Rothschild, retained him to revise and modernize
the age-old protocols of Zionism, which
from the outset, was designed to give the "Synagogue
of Satan", so named by Jesus Christ [and who are "them which say they
are Jews and are not" - Revelation /Apocalypse 2:9], ultimate world-domination
so they could impose the luciferian ideology upon what would remain of
the human-race after the final social-cataclysm by use of satanic despotism.
Weishaupt completed his task May 1, 1776. Now you know why May 1 is the
great day with all communist nations to this very day (May 1 is also "Law
Day" as declared by the American Bar Association). (The celebration of
May 1 [Baal/Bealtaine] goes much further back into history than this, and
the day was picked for the ancient reasons, which comes through Paganism;
Baal-worship
and revolves around the worship of Satan. - David G.) That was the day,
May 1, 1776, that Weishaupt completed his plan and officially organized
the Illuminati to put the plan into execution. That plan required the destruction
of all existing governments and religions. That objective was to be reached
by dividing the masses of people, whom he Weishaupt, termed: "goyism" [nationalism]
or human cattle into opposing camps in ever increasing numbers on political,
social, economic, and other issues - the very conditions we have in our
country today. The opposing sides were then to be armed and incidents provided
which would cause them to fight and weaken themselves and gradually destroy
national governments and religious institutions. Again I say, the very
conditions in the world today.
"And at this point let me stress a prime feature of the
Illuminati plans. When and if their blueprint for world control, the Protocols
Of The Elders Of Zion, is discovered and exposed, they would wipe all
the Jews off the face of the earth in order to divert suspicions from themselves.
If you think this is far fetched, bear in mind that they permitted Hitler,
a liberal socialist himself, who was financed by corrupt Kennedy, the Warburgs,
and the Rothschilds, to incinerate 600,000 Jews.
"Now just why did the conspirators choose the word: "Illuminati"
for their satanic-organization? Weishaupt himself said that the word is
derived from Lucifer and means: "holder of the light." Using the lie that
his objective was to bring about a one-world government to enable those
with mental ability to govern the world and prevent all wars in the future.
In short, using the words: "peace on earth" as his bait, exactly as that
same bait as: "peace" was used by the 1945 conspirators to force the United
Nations on us, Weishaupt financed, I repeat, by the Rothschilds, recruited
some 2,000 paid followers. These included the most intelligent men in the
field of arts and letters, education, the sciences, finance, and industry.
He then established Lodges of the Grand Orient; Masonic Lodges to be their
secret headquarters and I again repeat, that in all of this he was acting
under orders from the House of Rothschild. The main features of the Weishaupt
plan of operation required his Illuminati to do the following things to
help them to accomplish their purpose:
- Use monetary and sex bribery to obtain control of men
already in high places* in the various levels of all governments and other
fields of endeavor. Once influential persons had fallen for the lies, deceits,
and temptations of the Illuminati they were to be held in bondage by application
of political and other forms of blackmail, threats of financial ruin, public
exposure, and fiscal harm, even death to themselves and loved members of
their families.
* Ephesians 6:11 Put on the whole armour of God, that ye may be able
to stand against the wiles of the devil.
6:12 For we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities,
against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world, against
spiritual
wickedness in high [places].
Do you realize how many present top officials in our present
government in Washington are controlled in just that way by the CFR? Do
you realize how many homosexuals in our State Department, the Pentagon,
all federal agencies, even in the White House are controlled that way?
- Illuminati and the faculties of colleges and universities
were to cultivate students possessing exceptional mental ability belonging
to well-bred families with international leanings and recommend them for
special training in internationalism. Such training was to be provided
by granting scholarships to those selected by the Illuminatists.
"That gives you an idea what a "Rhodes' Scholarship" means.
It means indoctrination into accepting the idea that only a one-world government
can put an end to recurring wars and strife. That's how the United Nations
was sold to the American people.
"One of the most notable Rhodes' scholars we have in our
country is Senator William J. Fulbright, sometimes referred to as half-bright.
His entire voting-record spells Illuminati. All such scholars were to be
first persuaded and then convinced that men of special talent and brains
have the right to rule those less gifted on the ground that the masses
don't know what is best for them fiscally, mentally, and spiritually. In
addition to the Rhodes' and similar scholarships, today there are three
special Illuminati schools located in Gordonstown in Scotland, Salem in
Germany, and Annavrighta in Greece. These three are known ones, but there
are others that are kept undercover. Prince Philip, the husband of Britain's
Queen Elizabeth, was educated at Gordonstown (as was also Prince
Charles) at the instigation of Lord Louis Mountbatten, his uncle, a
Rothschild relative, who became Britain's Admiral of the Fleet after World
War II ended.
- All influential people trapped into coming under the
control of the Illuminati, plus the students who had been specially educated
and trained, were to be used as agents and placed behind the scenes of
all governments as experts and specialists so they would advise the top
executives to adopt policies which would in the long-run serve the secret
plans of the Illuminati one-world conspiracy and bring about the destruction
of the governments and religions they were elected or appointed to serve.
"Do you know how many such men operate in our government
at this very time? Rusk, McNamara, Hubert Humphrey, Fulbright, Keekle,
and goes on and on and on.
- Perhaps the most vital directive in Weishaupt's plan
was to obtain absolute-control of the press, at that time the only mass-communications
media, to distribute information to the public so that all news and information
could be slanted so that the masses could be convinced that a one-world
government is the only solution to our many and varied problems.
"Do you know who owns and controls our mass-communications
media? I'll tell you. Practically all the movie lots in Hollywood are owned
by the Lehmans; Kuhn, Loeb, and Company; Goldman-Sachs; and other internationalist
bankers. All the national radio and TV channels in the nation are owned
and controlled by those same internationalist bankers. The same is true
of every chain of metropolitan newspapers and magazines, also of the press
wire-services, such as Associated Press, United Press, International, etc..
The supposed heads of all those media are merely the fronts for the internationalist
bankers, who in turn compose the hierarchy of the CFR, today's Illuminati
in America.
"Now can you understand why the Pentagon Press agent,
Sylvester, so brazenly proclaimed that the government has the right to
lie to the people. What he really meant was that our CFR controlled government
had the power to lie to and be believed by the brain-washed American people.
"Let us again go back to the first days of the Illuminati.
Because Britain and France were the two greatest world powers in the late
years of the 18th Century; Weishaupt ordered the Illuminati to foment the
colonial wars, including our Revolutionary War, to weaken the British Empire
and organize the French Revolution to start in 1789. However; in 1784,
a true act of God placed the Bavarian government in possession of evidence
which proved the existence of the Illuminati and that evidence could have
saved France if they, the French government, hadn't refused to believe
it. Here is how that act of God happened. It was in 1784 that Weishaupt
issued his orders for the French Revolution. A German writer, named Zweig,
put it into book form. It contained the entire Illuminati story and Weishaupt's
plans. A copy of this book was sent to the Illuminists in France headed
by Robespierre whom Weishaupt had delegated to foment the French Revolution.
The courier was struck and killed by lightening as he rode through Rawleston
on his way from Frankfurt to Paris. The police found the subversive documents
on his body and turned them over to the proper authorities. After a careful
study of the plot; the Bavarian government ordered the police to raid Weishaupt's
newly-organized Lodges of the "Grand Orient" and the homes of his most
influential associates. All additional evidence thus discovered convinced
the authorities that the documents were genuine copies of the conspiracy
by which the Illuminati planned to use wars and revolutions to bring about
the establishment of a one-world government; the powers of which they,
headed by the Rothschilds, intended to usurp as soon as it was established,
exactly in line with the United Nations' plot of today.
"In 1785, the Bavarian government outlawed the Illuminati
and closed the Lodges of the "Grand Orient." In 1786; they published all
the details of the conspiracy. The English title of that publication is:
"The Original Writings of the Order and the Sect of the Illuminati." Copies
of the entire conspiracy were sent to all the heads of church and state
in Europe. But the power of the Illuminati, which was actually the power
of the Rothschilds, was so great that this warning was ignored. Nevertheless;
the Illuminati became a dirty word and it went underground.
"At the same time, Weishaupt ordered Illuminists to infiltrate
into the Lodges of "Blue Masonry" and formed their own secret societies
within all secret societies. Only Masons who proved themselves internationalists
and those whose conduct proved they had defected from God were initiated
into the Illuminati. Thenceforth; the conspirators donned the cloak of
philanthropy and humanitarianism to conceal their revolutionary and subversive
activities. In order to infiltrate into Masonic Lodges in Britain; Weishaupt
invited John Robison over to Europe. Robison was a high-degree Mason in
the "Scottish Rite." He was a professor of natural philosophy at Edinburgh
University and Secretary of the Royal Society of Edinburgh. Robison did
not fall for the lie that the objective of the Illuminati was to create
a benevolent dictatorship; but he kept his reactions to himself so well
that he was entrusted with a copy of Weishaupt's revised conspiracy for
study and safekeeping.
Anyway; because the heads of state and church in France
were deluded into ignoring the warnings given them; the revolution broke
out in 1789 as scheduled by Weishaupt. In order to alert other governments
to their danger, in 1798, Robison published a book entitled: "Proof of
a conspiracy to Destroy all Governments and Religions" but his warnings
were ignored exactly as our American people have been ignoring all warnings
about the United Nations and the Council on Foreign Relations (CFR). (Let
me add here, that if the people of the earth would heed His Word, none
of this could happen; just think, if the common people all listened to
Jesus Christ and refused to take oaths, there would be no cover for these
despicable men. - David G.)
"Now here is something that will stun and very likely
outrage many who hear this; but there is documentary proof that our own
Thomas Jefferson and Alexander Hamilton became students of Weishaupt. Jefferson
was one of Weishaupt's strongest defenders when he was outlawed by his
government and it was Jefferson who infiltrated the Illuminati into the
then newly-organized lodges of the "Scottish Rite" in New England. Here
is the proof.
"In 1789; John Robison warned all Masonic leaders in America
that the Illuminati had infiltrated into their lodges and on July 19, 1789;
David Papen, President of Harvard University, issued the same warning to
the graduating-class and lectured them on how the influence of Illuminism
was acquitting on American politics and religion, and to top it off; John
Quincy Adams, who had organized the New England Masonic Lodges, issued
his warnings. He wrote three letters to Colonel William L. Stone, a top
Mason, in which he exposed how Jefferson was using Masonic lodges for subversive
Illuministic purposes. Those three letters are at this very time in Whittenburg
Square Library in Philadelphia. In short; Jefferson, founder of the Democratic
Party, was a member of the Illuminati which at least partly accounts for
the condition of the party at this time and through infiltration of the
Republican Party; we have exactly nothing of loyal Americanism today. That
disastrous rebuff at the Congress of Vienna created by the Czar of Russia
did not by any means destroy the Illuminati conspiracy. It merely forced
them to adopt a new strategy realizing that the one-world idea was, for
the moment, killed. The Rothschilds decided that to keep the plot alive
they would have to do it by heightening their control of the money-system
of the European nations.
"Earlier; by a ruse; the outcome of the Battle of Waterloo
had been falsified, Rothschild had spread a story that Napoleon had had
one bad battle, which precipitated a terrific panic on the stock-market
in England. All stocks had plummeted down to practically zero and Nathan
Rothschild bought all the stocks for virtually a penny on its dollar values.
That gave him complete control of the economy of Britain and virtually
of all Europe. So, immediately after that Congress in Vienna had boomeranged;
Rothschild had forced Britain to set up a new "Bank of England", over which
he had absolute control, exactly, as later through Jacob Schiff; he engineered
our own "Federal Reserve Act" which gave the House of Rothschild a secret
control of the economy in the United States. But now for a moment; let's
dwell on the activities of the Illuminati in the United States.
"In 1826; one Captain William Morgan decided it was his
duty to inform all Masons and the general public what the full proof was
regarding the Illuminati, their secret plans, intended objectives, and
to reveal the identities of the masterminds of the conspiracy. The Illuminati
promptly tried Morgan in absentia and convicted him of treason. They ordered
one Richard Howard, an English Illuminist, to carry-out their sentence
of execution as a traitor. Morgan was warned and he tried to escape to
Canada, but Howard caught up with him near the border; near the Niagara
Gorge to be exact, where he murdered him. This was verified in a sworn
statement made in New York by one Avery Allen to the effect that he heard
Howard render his report of the execution to a meeting of "Knights Templars"
in St. John's Hall in New York. He also told how arrangements had been
made to ship Howard back to England. That Allen affidavit is on record
in New York City Archives. Very few Masons and very few of the general-public
know that general-disapproval over that incident of murder caused approximately
half of all the Masons in the northern jurisdiction of the United States
to secede. Copies of the minutes of the meeting held to discuss that matter
are still in existence in safe hands and that all that secrecy emphasizes
the power of the masterminds of the Illuminati to prevent such terrible
events of history from being taught in our schools.
"In the early 1850's; the Illuminati held a secret meeting
in New York which was addressed by a British Illuminist named Wright. Those
in attendance were told that the Illuminati was organizing to unite the
Nihilist and Atheist groups with all other subversive groups into an international
group to be known as Communists. That was when the word: "communist" first
came into being and it was intended to be the supreme weapon and scare-word
to terrify the whole world and drive the terrorized peoples into the Illuminati
one-world scheme. This scheme: "communism," was
to be used to enable the Illuminati to foment future wars and revolutions.
Clinton Roosevelt, a direct ancestor of Franklin Roosevelt; Horace Greeley;
and Charles Dana; foremost newspaper-publishers of that time were appointed
to head a committee to raise funds for the new venture. Of course, most
of the funds were provided by the Rothschilds and this fund was used to
finance Karl Marx and Engels when they wrote "Das Kapital" and the "Communist
Manifesto" in Soho, England. And this clearly reveals that communism is
not a so-called ideology, but a secret weapon; a bogy-man word to serve
the purpose of the Illuminati.
"Weishaupt died in 1830; but prior to his death, he prepared
a revised version of the age-old conspiracy, the Illuminati, which under
various aliases was to organize, finance, direct, and control all international
organizations and groups by working their agents into executive positions
at the top. In the United States we have Woodrow Wilson, Franklin Roosevelt,
Jack Kennedy, Johnson, Rusk, McNamara, Fulbright, George Bush etc., as
prime examples. In addition, while Karl Marx was writing the "Communist
Manifesto" under the director of one group of Illuminists, Professor Karl
Ritter of Frankfurt University was writing the antithesis under the direction
of another group. The idea was that those who direct the overall conspiracy
could use the differences in those two so-called ideologies to enable them
to divide larger and larger numbers of the human-race into opposing camps
so that they could be armed and then brainwashed into fighting and destroying
each other. And particularly, to destroy all political and religious institutions.
The work Ritter started was continued after his death and completed by
the German so-called philosopher Freidrich Wilhelm Nietzsche who founded
Nietzscheanism. This Nietzscheanism was later developed into Fascism and
then into Nazism and was used to foment World War I and II.
"In 1834; the Italian revolutionary leader, Guiseppe Mazzini,
was selected by the Illuminati to direct their revolutionary program throughout
the world. He served in that capacity until he died in 1872, but some years
before he died; Mazzini had enticed an American General named Albert Pike
into the Illuminati. Pike was fascinated by the idea of a one-world government
and ultimately he became the head of this luciferian conspiracy. Between
1859 and 1871 he, Pike, worked out a military-blueprint for three world
wars and various revolutions throughout the world which he considered would
forward the conspiracy to its final stage in the 20th century. Again I
remind you that these conspirators were never concerned with immediate
success. They also operated on a long-range view. Pike did most of his
work in his home in Little Rock, Arkansas. But
a few years later; when the Illuminati's Lodges of the Grand Orient became
suspect and repudiated because of Mazzini's revolutionary activities in
Europe, Pike organized what he called the New and Reformed Palladian Right.
He set up three Supreme Councils; one in Charleston, South Carolina, one
in Rome, Italy, and a third in Berlin, Germany. He had Mazzini establish
23 subordinate councils in strategic locations throughout the world. These
have been the secret headquarters of the world revolutionary movement ever
since.
"Long before Marconi invented the radio; the scientists
in the Illuminati had found the means for Pike and the heads of his councils
to communicate secretly. It was the discovery of that secret that enabled
intelligence-officers to understand how apparently unrelated incidents;
such as the assassination of an Austrian Prince in Serbia; took place simultaneously
throughout the world, which developed into a war or a revolution. Pike's
plan was as simple as it has proved effective. It called for communism,
nazism, political zionism, and other international movements to be organized
and used to foment three global world wars and at least two major revolutions.
"The first world war was to be fought so as to enable
the Illuminati to destroy Czarism in Russia, as vowed by Rothschild after
the Czar had torpedoed his scheme at the Congress in Vienna, and to transform
Russia into a stronghold of atheistic-communism. The differences stirred
up by agents of the Illuminati between the British and German Empires were
to be used to foment this war. After the war would be ended; communism
was to be built up and used to destroy other governments and weaken religions.
"World War II, when and if necessary, was to be fomented
by using the controversies between Fascists and political zionists, and
here let it be noted that Hitler was financed by Krupp, the Warburgs, the
Rothschilds, and other internationalist bankers and that the slaughter
of the supposed 6,000,000 Jews by Hitler didn't bother the Jewish internationalist
bankers at all. That slaughter was necessary in order to create worldwide-hatred
of the German people and thus bring about war against them. In short; this
second world war was to be fought to destroy nazism and increase the power
of political Zionism so that the state of Israel could be established in
Palestine.
"During this World War II; international communism was
to be built up until it equalled in strength that of united Christendom.
When it reached that point; it was to be contained and kept in check until
required for the final social-cataclysm. As we know now; Roosevelt, Churchill,
and Stalin put that exact policy into effect and Truman, Eisenhower, Kennedy,
Johnson, and George Bush continued that same exact policy.
"World War III is to be fomented,
using the so-called controversies; by the agents of the Illuminati operating
under whatever new name; that are now being stored up between the political
Zionists and the leaders of the Moslem world. That war is to be directed
in such a manner that all of Islam and political Zionism (Israelis) will
destroy each other while at the same time; the remaining nations, once
more divided on this issue, will be forced to fight themselves into a state
of complete exhaustion; physically, mentally, spiritually, and economically.
"Now can any thinking person doubt that the intrigue now
going on in the near Middle and Far-East is designed to accomplish that
satanic objective? Pike himself foretold all this in a statement he made
to Mazzini on August 15, 1871. Pike stated that after World War III is
ended; those who will aspire to undisputed world-domination will provoke
the greatest social-cataclysm the world has ever known. Quoting his own
words taken from the letter he wrote to Mazzini and which letter is now
catalogued in the British Museum in London, England; he said:
"We shall unleash the nihilists and the atheists
and we shall provoke a great social-cataclysm which in all its horror will
show clearly to all nations the effect of absolute-atheism; the origins
of savagery and of most bloody turmoil. Then everywhere, the people will
be forced to defend themselves against the world-minority of the world-revolutionaries
and will exterminate those destroyers of civilization and the multitudes
disillusioned with Christianity whose spirits will be from that moment
without direction and leadership and anxious for an ideal, but without
knowledge where to send its adoration, will receive the true light through
the universal-manifestation of the pure doctrine of Lucifer brought finally
out into public view. A manifestation which will result from a general
reactionary movement which will follow the destruction of Christianity
and Atheism; both conquered and exterminated at the same time."
"When Mazzini died in 1872; Pike made another revolutionary
leader named Adrian Lemmy; his successor. Lemmy, in turn, was succeeded
by Lenin and Trotsky, then by Stalin. The revolutionary activities of all
those men were financed by British, French, German, and American international
bankers; all of them dominated by the House of Rothschild. We are supposed
to believe that the international bankers of today, like the money-changers
of Christ's day, are only the tools or agents of the great conspiracy,
but actually they are the masterminds behind all the mass-communications
media leading us into believing that communism is a movement of the so-called
workers; the actual fact is that both British and American intelligence-officers
have authentic documentary-evidence that international liberals, operating
through their international banking houses; particularly the House of Rothschild,
have financed both sides of every war and revolution since 1776.
"Those who today comprise the conspiracy (the CFR in the
United States and the RIIA in Britain); direct our governments whom they
hold in usury through such methods as the Federal Reserve System in America
to fight wars, such as Vietnam (created by the United Nations), so as to
further Pike's Illuminati plans to bring the world to that stage of the
conspiracy when atheistic-communism and the whole of Christianity can be
forced into an all-out third world war within each remaining nation as
well as on an international basis scale.
"The headquarters of the great conspiracy in the late
1700's was in Frankfurt, Germany where the House of Rothschild had been
established by Mayar (or Mayer) Amschel who adopted the Rothschild name
and linked together other international financiers who had literally sold
their souls to the devil. After the Bavarian government's exposure in 1786;
the conspirators moved their headquarters to Switzerland then to London.
Since World War II (after Jacob Schiff, the Rothschild's boy in America
died); the headquarters of the American branch has been in the Harold Pratt
Building in New York City and the Rockefellers, originally proteges of
Schiff, have taken over the manipulation of finances in America for the
Illuminati.
"In the final phases of the conspiracy; the one-world
government will consist of the king-dictator; the head of the United Nations,
the CFR, and a few billionaires, economists, and scientists who have proved
their devotion to the great conspiracy. All others are to be integrated
into a vast conglomeration of mongrelized humanity; actually slaves.
Now let me show you how our federal government and the American people
have been sucked into the one-world take over plot of the Illuminati great
conspiracy and always bear in mind, that the United Nations was created
to become the housing for that one-world, so-called, liberal conspiracy.
The real foundations of the plot of the takeover of the United States were
laid during the period of our Civil War. Not that Weishaupt and the earlier
masterminds had ever overlooked the new world, as I have previously indicated;
Weishaupt had his agents planted over here as far back as the Revolutionary
War.
"It was during the Civil War that the conspirators launched
their first concrete efforts. We know that Judah Benjamin, chief advisor
of Jefferson Davis, was a Rothschild agent. We also know that there were
Rothschild agents planted in Abraham Lincoln's cabinet who tried to sell
him into a financial dealing with the House of Rothschild. But old Abe
saw through the scheme and bluntly rejected it thereby incurring the undying
enmity of the Rothschilds; exactly as the Russian Czar did when he torpedoed
their first League of Nations at the Congress in Vienna. Investigation
of the assassination of Lincoln revealed that the assassin Booth was a
member of a secret conspiratorial group. Because there were a number of
highly-important government-officials involved; the name of the group was
never revealed and it became a mystery; exactly as the assassination of
Jack (John F.) Kennedy is still a mystery. But I am sure it will not remain
a mystery for long. Anyway; the ending of the Civil War destroyed temporarily
all chances of the House of Rothschild to get a clutch on our money-system;
such as they had acquired in Britain and other nations in Europe. I say
temporarily because the Rothschilds and the masterminds of the conspiracy
never quit, so they had to start from scratch; but they lost no time in
getting started.
"Shortly after the Civil War; a young immigrant, who called
himself Jacob H. Schiff, arrived in New York. Jacob was a young man with
a mission for the House of Rothschild. Jacob was the son of a
Rabbi
who was born in one of the Rothschild's houses in Frankfurt, Germany. I
will go deeply into his background. The important point was that Rothschild
recognized in him, not only a potential money wizard; but more important,
he also saw the latent Machiavellian qualities in Jacob, that could, as
it did, make him an invaluable functionary in the great one-world conspiracy.
After a comparatively brief training-period in the Rothschild's London
Bank; Jacob left for America with instructions to buy into a banking-house
which was to be the springboard to acquire control of the money-system
of the United States. Actually; Jacob came here to carry out four specific
assignments.
1. And most important, was to acquire control of America's
money-system.
2. Find desirable men, who for a price, would be willing
to serve as stooges for the great conspiracy and promote them into high
places in our federal government, our Congress, and the U.S. Supreme Court,
and all federal agencies (Ephesians 6:12 - K.J.A.V.*).
3. Create minority-group strife throughout the nations;
particularly between the whites and blacks.
4. Create a movement to destroy religion in the United
States; but Christianity to be the chief target.
* Ephesians 6:12 For we wrestle not against flesh and
blood, but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers of
the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in high [places].
"Earlier I stated that Jacob Schiff came to America with
orders by Rothschild to carry out four specific directives. The first and
most important one was to get control of the United States' money-system.
Let's trace Schiff's step to accomplish that directive. As a first step
he had to buy into a banking-house; but it had to be the kind of a house
that he could absolutely control and mold for that primary-objective of
entrapping our U.S. money-system. After carefully scouting around; Jacob
bought a partnership in a firm that called itself: "Kuhn and Loeb." Like
Schiff; Kuhn and Loeb were immigrants from German Jewish ghettos. They
came to the U.S. in the mid 1840's and both of them started their business
careers as itinerant pack-peddlers. In the early 1850's; they pooled their
interests and set up a merchandise-store in Lafayette, Indiana under the
firm-name of "Kuhn and Loeb" servicing the covered-wagon settlers on their
way west. In the years that followed; they set up similar stores in Cincinnati
and St. Louis. Then they added "pawn-brokering" to their merchandising-pursuits.
From that to money-lending was a short and quick step.
"By the time Schiff arrived on the scene; "Kuhn and Loeb"
was a well-known private banking-firm and this is the firm Jacob bought
into. Shortly after he became a partner in "Kuhn and Loeb;" Schiff married
Loeb's daughter, Teresa, then he bought out Kuhn's interests and moved
the firm to New York and "Kuhn and Loeb" became "Kuhn, Loeb, and Company;"
international bankers with Jacob Schiff, agent of the Rothschilds, ostensibly
the sole owner. And throughout his career; this blend of Judas and Machiavelli,
the first heirarch of the Illuminati's great conspiracy in America, posed
as a generous philanthropist and a man of great holiness; the cover-up
policy set forth by the Illuminati.
"As I have stated; the first great step of the conspiracy
was to be the entrapment of our money-system. To achieve that objective;
Schiff had to get full cooperation of the then big-banker elements in America;
and that was easier said than done. Even in those years; Wall Street was
the heart of the American money-mart and J.P. Morgan was its dictator.
Next in line were the Drexels and the Biddles of Philadelphia. All the
other financiers, big and little, danced to the music of those three houses;
but particularly to that of Morgan. All of those three were proud, haughty,
arrogant potentates.
"For the first few years; they viewed the little bewhiskered
man from the German ghettos with utter contempt; but Jacob knew how to
overcome that. He threw a few Rothschild bones to them. The said bones
being distribution in America of desirable European stock and bond issues.
Then he discovered that he had a still more potent weapon in his hands
in the following.
"It was in the decades following our Civil War that our
industries began to burgeon. We had great railroads to build. The oil,
mining, steel, textile industries were bursting out of their swaddling-clothes.
All of that called for vast financing; much of that financing had to come
from abroad. That meant the House of Rothschild and that was when Schiff
came into his own. He played a very crafty game. He became the patron-saint
of John D. Rockefeller, Edward R. Harriman, and Andrew Carnegie. He financed
the Standard Oil Company for Rocky, the Railroad Empire for Harriman, and
the Steel Empire for Carnegie. But instead of hogging all the other industries
for Kuhn, Loeb, and Company, he opened the doors of the House of Rothschild
to Morgan, Biddle, and Drexel. In turn; Rothschild arranged the setting-up
of London, Paris, European and other branches for those three; but always
in partnerships with Rothschild subordinates and Rothschild made it very
clear to all those men that Schiff was to be the boss in New York.
"Thus at the turn of the century Schiff had a tight control
of the entire banking-fraternity on Wall Street which by then, with Schiff's
help, included Lehman brothers, Goldman-Sachs, and other internationalist
banks that where headed by men chosen by the Rothschilds. In short; that
meant control of the nation's money-powers and he was then ready for the
giant step - the entrapment of our national money-system.
"Now under our Constitution; all control of our money-system
is vested solely in our Congress. Schiff's next important step was to seduce
our Congress to betray that Constitutional edict by surrendering that control
to the hierarchy of the Illuminati's great conspiracy. In order to legalize
that surrender and thus make the people powerless to resist it, it would
be necessary to have Congress enact special legislation. To accomplish
that; Schiff would have to infiltrate stooges into both houses of Congress.
Stooges powerful enough to railroad Congress into passing such legislation.
Equally, or even more important; he would have to plant a stooge in the
White House, a president that is without integrity and without scruples,
who would sign that legislation into law. To accomplish that he had to
get control of either the Republican or the Democratic Party. The Democratic
Party was the more vulnerable; it was the hungrier of the two parties.
Except for Grover Cleveland; the Democrats had been unable to land one
of their men in the White House since before the Civil War. There were
two reasons for that:
1. Poverty of the Party.
2. There were considerably more Republican-minded voters
than Democrats.
"The poverty matter was not a great problem, but the voter
problem was a different story. But as I previously said; Schiff was a smart
cookie. Here is the atrocious and murderous method he employed to solve
that voter problem. His solution emphasizes how very little the Jewish
internationalist bankers care about their own racial brethren as you shall
see. Suddenly; around 1890, there broke out a nationwide series of pogroms
in Russia. Many, many, thousands of innocent Jews; men, women, and children
were slaughtered by the Cossacks and other peasants. Similar pogroms with
similar slaughter of innocent Jews broke-out in Poland, Rumania, and Bulgaria.
All those pogroms were fomented by Rothschild agents. As a result; the
Jewish terrified refugees, from all of those nations, swarmed into the
United States and that continued throughout the next two or three decades,
because the pogroms were continuous through all those years. All those
refugees were aided by self-styled humanitarian-committees set up by Schiff,
the Rothschilds, and all the Rothschild affiliates.
"In the main; the refugees streamed into New York, but
the Schiff-Rothschild humanitarian-committees found ways to shuffle many
of them into other large cities such as Chicago, Boston, Philadelphia,
Detroit, Los Angeles, etc.. All of them were quickly transformed into "naturalized-citizens"
and educated to register as Democrats. Thus all of that so-called minority-group
became solid Democratic voter-blocks in their communities, all controlled
and maneuvered by their so-called benefactors. And shortly after the turn
of the century; they became vital factors in the political-life of our
nation. That was one of the methods Schiff employed to plant men like Nelson
Aldrich in our Senate and Woodrow Wilson in the White House.
"At this point let me remind you of another one of the
important jobs that was assigned to Schiff when he was dispatched to America.
I refer to the job of destroying the unity of the American people by creating
minority-groups and racial-strife. By the pogrom-driven Jewish refugees
entering into America; Schiff was creating a ready-made minority-group
for that purpose. But the Jewish people, as a whole, made fearful by the
pogroms, could not be depended upon to create the violence necessary to
destroy the unity of the American people. But right within America; there
was an already made-to-order, although as yet, a sleeping minority-group,
the Negroes, who could be sparked into so-called demonstrations, rioting,
looting, murder, and every other type of lawlessness - all that was necessary,
was to incite and arouse them. Together; those two minority-groups, properly
maneuvered, could be used to create exactly the "King of Strife" in America
the Illuminati would need to accomplish their objective.
"Thus at the same time that Schiff and co-conspirators
were laying their plans for the entrapment of our money-system; they were
also perfecting plans to hit the unsuspecting American people with an explosive
and terrifying racial upheaval that would tear the people into hate-fractions
and create chaos throughout the nation; especially on all college and university
campuses; all protected by Earl Warren decisions and our so-called leaders
in Washington D.C. (Remember the Warren commission on the assassination
of President Jack (John) F. Kennedy*). Of course; perfecting those
plans requires time and infinitely-patient organizing.
* NOTE: Jack Kennedy, during his term of office
as the President of the United States, became a Christian. In his attempt
to "repent," he tried to inform the people of this Nation (at least twice)
that the Office of the President of the United States was being manipulated
by the Illuminati/CFR. At the same time, he put a stop to the "borrowing"
of Federal Reserve Notes from the Federal Reserve Bank and began issuing
United States Notes (which was interest-free) on the credit of the United
States. It was the issuing of the United States Notes that caused Jack
Kennedy to be "assassinated."
Upon taking the Oath of Office; Lynden B. Johnson stopped
the issuing of the United States Notes and went back to borrowing Federal
Reserve Bank Notes (which were loaned to the people of the United States
at the going rate of interest of 17%). The U.S. Notes, that were issued
under John F. Kennedy, were of the 1963 series which bore a "Red" seal
on the face of the "Note."
"Now to remove all doubts; I'll take a few moments to
give you the documentary proof of this racial-strife plot. First of all
they had to create the leadership and organizations to draw in millions
of dupes, both Jewish and Negroes, who would do the demonstrating and commit
the rioting, looting, and lawlessness. So in 1909; Schiff, the Lehmans,
and other conspirators, organized and set up the "National Association
for the Advancement of the Coloured People" known as the "NAACP." The presidents,
directors, and legal councils of the NAACP were always "white men Jews"
appointed by Schiff and this is the case to this very day (Absolutely true.
- David G.).
"Then in 1913; the Schiff group organized the "Anti-defamation
League of the B'nai B'rith" commonly known as the "ADL" to serve as the
gestapo and hatchet-man outfit for the entire great conspiracy. Today the
sinister "ADL" maintains over 2,000 agencies in all parts of our country
and they advise and completely control every action of the "NAACP" or of
the "Urban League" of all the other so-called Negro civil-rights organizations
throughout the nation including such leaders as Martin Luther King, Stockely
Carmichael, Barnard Rustin, and others of the ilk. In addition; the "ADL"
acquired absolute control of the advertising-budgets of many department-stores,
hotel-chains, and TV and Radio industrialist sponsors, also advertising-agencies
in order to control practically all the mass-communications media and force
every loyal newspaper to slant and falsify the news and to further incite;
and, at the same time create sympathy for; the lawlessness and violence
of the Negro mobs. Here is documentary proof of the beginning of their
deliberate plot to foment the Negroes into all their lawlessness.
"Around 1910; one Israel Zangwill wrote a play entitled
"The Melting-Pot." It was sheer propaganda to incite the Negroes and Jews
because the play purportedly visualized how the American people were discriminating
against, and persecuting Jews and Negroes. At that time nobody seemed to
realize that it was a propaganda play. It was that cleverly-written. The
propaganda was well wrapped-up in the truly great entertainment in the
play and it was a big Broadway Hit.
"Now in those years, the legendary Diamond Jim Brady used
to throw a banquet at the famous Delmonico Restaurant in New York after
the opening-performance of a popular play. He threw such a party for the
cast of "The Melting-Pot," its author, producer, and chosen Broadway-celebrities.
By then I'd already made a personal mark on the Broadway Theater and was
invited to that party. There I met George Bernard Shaw and a Jewish writer
named Israel Cohen. Zangwill, Shaw, and Cohen were the ones who created
the Fabian Society in England and had worked closely with a Frankfurt Jew
named Mordicai who had changed his name to Karl Marx; but remember, at
that time both Marxism and Communism were just
emerging and nobody paid much attention to either and nobody suspected
the propaganda in the writings of those three really brilliant writers.
"At that banquet; Israel Cohen told me that he was then
engaged in writing a book which was to be a follow-up on Zangwill's "The
Melting-Pot." The title of his book was to be "A Racial-Program for the
20th Century." At that time I was completely absorbed by my work as a playwright,
and significant as that title was, its real-objective never dawned on me
nor was I interested in reading the book. But it suddenly hit me with the
force of a hydrogen-bomb when I received a newspaper-clipping of an item
published by the Washington D.C. Evening Star in May 1957. That item was
a verbatim reprint of the following excerpt in Israel Cohen's book "A Racial-Program
for the 20th Century" and it read as I quote:
"We must realize that our party's most powerful
weapon is racial-tension. By propounding into the consciousness of the
dark races, that for centuries they have been oppressed by the whites,
we can move them to the program of the communist party. In America; we
will aim for subtle victory. While inflaming the Negro minority against
the whites; we will instill in the whites a guilt-complex for their exploitation
of the Negroes. We will aid the Negroes to rise to prominence in every
walk of life, in the professions, and in the world of sports and entertainment.
With this prestige; the Negro will be able to intermarry with the whites
and begin a process which will deliver America to our cause."
Record of June 7, 1957; by Representative Thomas G. Abernethy.
"Thus the authenticity of that passage in Cohen's book
was fully established. But the one question that remained in my mind was
whether it represented the official policy or plot of the Communist Party
or just a personal expression of Cohen himself. Hence I sought more proof
and I found it in an official pamphlet published in 1935 by the New York
Communist Party's official Workers' Library Publishers. That pamphlet was
entitled: "The Negroes in a Soviet America." It urged the Negroes to rise-up;
form a soviet-state in the south, and apply for admission to the Soviet
Union. It contained a firm pledge that the revolt would be supported by
all American "reds" and all so-called "liberals". On page 38; it promised
that a Soviet government would confer greater benefits to Negroes than
to whites and again this official communist pamphlet pledged that; I quote:
"any act of discrimination or prejudice against a Negro will become a crime
under the revolutionary law." That statement proved that the excerpt in
Israel Cohen's book published in 1913 was an official-edict of the Communist
Party and directly in line with the Illuminati-blueprint for world-revolution
issued by Weishaupt and later by Albert Pike.
"Now there's only one question and that is to prove that
the communist regime is directly controlled by the American Jacob Schiff
and London Rothschild masterminds of the great conspiracy. A little later
I will provide that proof that will remove even a remote doubt that the
Communist Party, as we know it, was created by those masterminds (capitalists
if you will note); Schiff, the Warburgs, and the Rothschilds that planned
and financed the entire Russian Revolution; the murder of the Czar and
his family, and that Lenin, Trotsky, and Stalin took their orders directly
from Schiff and the other capitalists whom they supposedly are fighting.
"Now can you see why the vile Earl Warren and his equally
vile co-Supreme Court justices issued that infamous and treasonous desegregation-decision
in 1954? It was to aid and abet the plot of the Illuminati conspirators
to create tension and strife between the Negroes and Whites. Can you see
why the same Earl Warren issued his decision prohibiting Christian-prayers
and Christmas-carols in our schools? Why Kennedy did likewise? And can
you see why Johnson and 66 Senators, despite the protests of 90% of the
American people, voted for the "Consular Treaty" which opens our entire
country to Russian spies and saboteurs? All those 66 Senators are 20th
century Benedict Arnolds.
"It is up to you and you, all of the American people,
to force Congress, our elected servants, to haul in those American traitors
for impeachments and that when proven guilty; they all be given the punishment
prescribed for traitors who aid and abet our enemies. And that includes
the enforcing of rigid investigations by Congress of the "CFR" and all
their fronts, such as the "ADL," the "NAACP," "SNIC," and such Illuminati
tools as Martin Luther King*. Such investigations will completely
unmask all the leaders in Washington, D.C. and the Illuminati and all their
affiliations and affiliates as traitors carrying-out the Illuminati plot.
It will completely unmask the United Nations as the intended crux of the
entire plot and force Congress to take the U.S. out of the U.N. and hurl
the U.N. out of the U.S.. In fact; it will destroy the U.N. and the entire
plot.
* I must point out at this point that I, JAH,
am in NO way a racist and that this author's opinion of Martin Luther
King is his and not mine. I am colour-blind in regard to
racial-issues.
"Before I close this phase; I wish to reiterate and stress
one vital point which I urge you to never forget if you wish to save our
country for your children and their children. Here is the point. Every
unconstitutional and unlawful act committed by Woodrow Wilson, by Franklin
Roosevelt, by Truman, Eisenhower, and Kennedy and that are now being committed
by Johnson (and today; George Bush and Bill Clinton) is exactly in line
with the Illuminati conspirators centuries-old plot outlined by Weishaupt
and Albert Pike. Every vicious decision issued by the traitorous Earl Warren
and his equally-traitorous Supreme Court justices was directly in line
with what the Illuminati-blueprint required. That all the treason committed
by our State Department under Rusk and earlier by John Foster Dulles, and
Marshall, also all the treason committed by McNamara and his predecessors
is directly in line with that same Illuminati-blueprint for the takeover
of the world. Also the amazing treason by various members of our Congress,
especially by the 66 Senators who signed for the Consular Treaty, has been
committed on orders from the Illuminati.
"Now I will go back to Jacob Schiff's entrapment of our
money-system and the treasonous actions that followed. It will also reveal
the Schiff-Rothschild control of not only Karl Marx; but of Lenin, Trotsky,
and Stalin, who created the revolution in Russia and set up the Communist
Party.
"It was in 1908 that Schiff decided that the time had
come for his seizure of our money-system. His chief lieutenants in that
seizure were Colonel Edward Mandell House whose entire career was that
of chief executive and courier for Schiff as I shall show and Bernard Berouk
and Herbert Lehman. In the Fall (Autumn) of that year; they assembled
in secret conclave at the Jeckle Island Hunt Club, owned by J.P. Morgan
at Jeckle Island, Georgia. Among those present were J.P. Morgan, John B.
Rockefeller, Colonel House, Senator Nelson Aldrich, Schiff, Stillman and
Vandlelip of the New York National City Bank, W. and J. Seligman, Eugene
Myer, Bernard Berouk, Herbert Lehman, Paul Warburg, in short; all of the
international bankers in America. All of them members of the hierarchy
of the Illuminati's great conspiracy.
"A week later they emerged with what they called the Federal
Reserve System. Senator Aldrich was the stooge who was to railroad it through
Congress, but they held that railroading in abeyance for one chief reason;
they would first have to plant their man and obedient stooge in the White
House to sign the Federal Reserve Act into law. They knew that even if
the Senate would pass that act unanimously; the then newly elected President
Taft would promptly veto it. So they waited.
"In 1912; their man, Woodrow Wilson, was elected to the
presidency. Immediately after Wilson was inaugurated; Senator Aldrich railroaded
the Federal Reserve Act through both houses of Congress and Wilson promptly
signed it and the Federal Reserve Act became law. That heinous act of treason
was committed on December 23, 1913; two days before Christmas when all
the members of Congress, except for several carefully picked Representatives
and three equally carefully picked Senators, were away from Washington.
How heinous treasonous was that act? I'll tell you. Our founding-fathers
knew full-well the power of money. They knew that whoever had that power
held the destiny of our nation in his hands. Therefore; they carefully
guarded this power when they set forth in the Constitution, that Congress,
the elected representatives of the people, alone would have the power.
The Constitutional-language on this point is brief, concise, and specific,
stated in Article I, Section 8, Paragraph 5, defining the duties and powers
of Congress, and I quote: "to coin money, regulate the value thereof, and
of foreign coin, and the standard of weights and measures." But on that
tragic, unforgettable day of infamy; December 23, 1913, the men we sent
to Washington to safeguard our interests; the Representatives, Senators,
and Woodrow Wilson, delivered the destiny of our nation into the hands
of two aliens from Eastern Europe; Jacob Schiff and Paul Warburg. Warburg
was a very recent immigrant who came here on orders from Rothschild for
the express purpose of blueprinting that foul Federal Reserve Act.
"Now the vast majority of the American people think that
the Federal Reserve System is an United States Government owned agency.
That is positively false. All of the stock of the federal reserve banks
is owned by the member banks and the heads of the member banks are all
members of the hierarchy of the great Illuminati conspiracy known today
as the "CFR."
"The details of that act of treason, in which many traitorous
so-called Americans participated, are far too long for this reporting;
but all those details are available in a book entitled, "The Federal Reserve
Conspiracy," written by Eustace Mullins. In that book; Mullins tells the
entire horrifying story and backs it up with unquestionable documentations.
Aside from it being a truly fascinating and shocking story of that great
betrayal; every American should read it as a matter of vital intelligence
for the time when the whole American people will finally come awake and
smash the entire conspiracy and with God's help; that awakening will surely
come.
King of kings' Bible:-
Daniel 12:2 And many of them that sleep in "the
dust of the earth" (Gen. 13:16; 28:14) shall awake, some to Everlasting
Life, and some to shame [and] everlasting contempt.
"Now if you think that those aliens and their by accident-of-birth
American co-conspirators would be content with just the control of our
money-system; you are in for another very sad shock. The Federal Reserve
System gave the conspirators complete control of our money-system; but
it in no way touched the earnings of the people because the Constitution
positively forbids what is now known as the 20%+ withholding tax. But the
Illuminati-blueprint for one-world-enslavement called
for the confiscation of all private property and control of individual
earning-powers. This, and Karl Marx stressed that feature in his blueprint,
had to be accomplished by a progressive graduated income-tax. As I have
stated; such a tax could not lawfully be imposed upon the American people.
It is succinctly and expressly forbidden by our Constitution. Thus; only
an Amendment to the Constitution could give the federal government such
confiscatory-powers.
"Well; that too was not an insurmountable problem for
our Machiavellian plotters. The same elected leaders in both houses of
Congress and the same Mr. Woodrow Wilson, who signed the infamous Federal
Reserve Act into law, amended the Constitution to make the federal income-tax,
known as the 16th Amendment, a law of the land. Both are illegal under
our Constitution. In short; the same traitors signed both betrayals, the
Federal Reserve Act and the 16th Amendment, into law. However; it seems
that nobody ever realized that the 16th amendment was set up to rob, and
I do mean rob, the people of their earnings via the income-tax provision.
"The plotters didn't fully use the provision until World
War II when that great humanitarian, Franklin Roosevelt, applied a 20%
withholding-tax on all small wage-earners and up to 90% on higher incomes.
Oh, of course; he faithfully promised that it would be only for the duration
of the war; but what was a promise to such a charlatan who in 1940, when
he was running for his third term, kept proclaiming: "I say again and again
and again that I will never send American boys to fight on foreign soil."
Remember; he was proclaiming that statement even as he was already preparing
to plunge us into World War II by enticing the Japanese into that sneak-attack
on Pearl Harbor to furnish him with his excuse.
"And before I forget; let me remind you that another charlatan
named Woodrow Wilson used exactly that same campaign-slogan in 1916. His
slogan was: "Re-elect the man who will keep your sons out of the war;"
exactly the same formula, exactly the same promises. But wait; as Al Jolson
used to say: "you ain't heard nothin' yet." That 16th Amendment income-tax
trap was intended to confiscate and rob the earnings of the common herd;
you and me. It was not intended to even touch the huge incomes of the Illuminati
gang, the Rockefellers, the Carnegies, the Lehmans, and all the other conspirators.
"So together, with that 16th Amendment; they created what
they called the "tax-free foundations" that would enable the conspirators
to transform their huge wealth into such so-called "foundations" and avoid
payment of virtually all income-taxes. The excuse for it was that the earnings
of those "tax-free foundations" would be devoted to humanitarian-philanthropy.
So we now have the several Rockefeller Foundations, the Carnegie and Dowman
Fund, the Ford Foundation, the Mellon Foundation, and hundreds of similar
"tax-free foundations."
"And what kind of philanthropy do these foundations support?
Well; they finance all the civil-rights groups (and conservation-movements)
that are creating all the chaos and rioting all over the country. They
finance the Martin Luther Kings. The Ford Foundation finances the "Center
for the Study of Democratic Institutions" in Santa Barbara, commonly referred
to as Moscow West, and which is headed by Wonder Boy Hutchens, Walter Ruther,
Erwin Cahnam and others of that ilk.
"In short; the "tax-free foundations" financed those who
are doing the job for the Illuminati's great conspiracy. And what are the
hundreds of billions of dollars they confiscate every year from the earnings
of the common herd, you and me, used for? Well; for one thing, there is
the "foreign aid" gimmick which gave billions to communist Tito plus gifts
of hundreds of jet-planes; many of which were turned over to Castro, plus
the costs of training communist pilots so that they can better shoot down
our planes. Billions to red Poland. Billions to India. Billions to Sucarno.
Billions to other enemies of the United States. That's what that treasonous
railroaded 16th Amendment has done to our nation and to the American people,
to you and to me, to your children and their children.
"Our CFR Illuminati-controlled federal government can
grant "tax-free status" to all foundations and pro-red one-world outfits,
such as the "Fund for the Republic." But if you or a patriotic pro-organization
is too outspokenly pro-American; they can terrify and intimidate you by
finding a misplaced comma in your income-tax-report and by threatening
you with penalties, fines, and even prison. Future historians will wonder
how the American people could have been so naive and stupid as to have
permitted such audacious brazen acts of treason as the "Federal Reserve
Act" and the "16th Amendment." Well; they were not naive and they were
not stupid. The answer is: they trusted the men they elected to safeguard
our country and our people, and they just didn't have even an inkling about
either betrayal, until after each one had been accomplished. (This is True;
however, he forgot to mention that the people also believed other men,
preachers
so-called, rather than believe His Word. - David G. and he's right
- JAH)
"It was the Illuminati-controlled mass-communications
media that has kept and is keeping our people naive and stupid and
unaware of the treason being committed. Now the great question is: "when
will the people wake up and do to our traitors of today what George Washington
and our founding-fathers would have done to Benedict Arnold?" Actually;
Benedict Arnold was a petty-traitor compared to our present traitors in
Washington D.C.. Now let's go back to the events that followed the rape
of our Constitution by the passage of the Federal Reserve Act and the 16th
Amendment. Was Wilson completely under their control?
"The masterminds of the great conspiracy put in motion
their next and what they hoped would be their final steps to achieve their
one-world government. The first of those steps was to be World War I. Why
War? Simple; the only excuse for a one-world government was that it will
supposedly ensure peace. The only thing that can make people cry for peace
is war. War brings chaos, destruction, exhaustion, to the winner as well
as to the loser. It brings economic-ruin to both. Most important; it destroys
the flower of the young manhood of both. To the saddened and heartbroken
oldsters (the mothers and fathers) who are left with nothing but memories
of their beloved sons; peace becomes worth any price and that is the emotion
upon which the conspirators depend for the success of their satanic plot.
(The answer to this is simple; do not serve in "their" armed-forces and
become the cannon-fodder of the self-styled elite. If you do, or permit
your children to do so, through the ignorance you permit, you deserve what
you, and they, get. - David G.)
"Throughout the 19th century, from 1814 to 1914; the world,
as a whole, was at peace. Such wars as the "Franco-Prussian," our own "Civil
War", the "Russo-Japanese War," were what might be termed "local-disturbances"
that did not affect the rest of the world. All the great nations were prosperous
and the people were staunchly nationalistic and fiercely-proud of their
sovereignties. It was utterly-unthinkable that the French and the German
peoples would be willing to live under a "one-world government"; or the
"Toks" and the "Russians," the "Chinese," or the "Japanese." Even more
unthinkable is that a Kaiser Wilhelm or a Franz Joseph or a Czar Nicholas
or any Monarch would willingly and meekly surrender his throne to a one-world
government. But bear in mind that the peoples in all nations are the real
power and "war" the only thing that could make the peoples yearn and clamour
for "peace", ensuring a one-world government. But it would have to be a
frightful and horribly devastating war. It could not be just a local-disturbing
war between just two nations; it would have to be a "world war." No major
nation must be left untouched by the horrors and devastation of such a
war. The cry for "peace" must be made universal.
(There were more lives lost in the "Great War" - the
First World War - than in any other war in history. For instance, more
men were slaughtered in one battle during the First World War - "the [so-called]
war to end all wars" - [and why was that exact phrase coined?] than
in the whole of the Second World War. What has seemed up until now to have
been totally illogical military-strategy, now makes perfect sense, if you
wanted as many of your own men to be killed as possible. That strategy
was that the British soldiers were ordered to walk slowly towards the German
machine-guns and not to charge them or take-cover, resulting in horrendous
carnage. If they disobeyed, then they were placed in front of a firing-squad
of their own comrades, so, either way, they would be sure to die.
- Taking this as an example, it should be plain for
you to see that the Illuminati have absolutely no qualms about slaughtering
millions of people that they consider to be "useless-eaters" and so neither
will they have any qualms about slaughtering billions more, soon. - JAH)
"Actually that was the format set by the Illuminati and
Nathan Rothschild at the turn of the 19th century. They first maneuvered
all of Europe into the "Napoleonic Wars," then the "Congress in Vienna"
which they, and particularly Rothschild, planned to transform into a "League
of Nations" which was to have been the housing for their one-world government;
exactly as the present "United Nations" was set up to be the housing for
the forthcoming, God forbid, one-world government. Anyway; that was the
format the House of Rothschild and Jacob Schiff decided to employ to achieve
their objective in 1914. Of course they knew that the same format had failed
in 1814; but they theorized that this was only because the Czar of Russia
had torpedoed that scheme. Well; the present 1914 conspirators would eliminate
that 1814 fly in the ointment. They'd make sure that after the new world
war that they were conspiring; there'd be no Czar of Russia around to throw
monkey-wrenches into the machinery.
"I will go into how they accomplished this first step
to launch a world war. History records that World War I was precipitated
by a trivial incident; the kind of incident both Weishaupt and Albert Pike
had incorporated in their blueprints. That incident was the assassination
of an Austrian Archduke arranged by the Illuminati masterminds. The war
followed. It involved Germany, Austria, Hungary, and their allies, the
so-called "Axis powers," against France, Britain, and Russia, called the
"Allies." Only the United States was not involved during the first two
years.
"By 1917 the conspirators had achieved their primary objective;
all of Europe was in a state of destitution. All the peoples were war-weary
and crying for peace and the outcome too was all set. It was to come as
soon as the United States would be hurled-in on the side of the Allies
and that was all set to happen immediately after Wilson's re-election.
After that, there could be only one outcome; complete victory for the Allies.
To fully confirm my statement that long before 1917; the conspiracy, headed
in America by Jacob Schiff, had it all set to hurl the United States into
that war. I will cite the proof.
"When Wilson was campaigning for re-election in 1916;
his chief appeal was: "re-elect the man who will keep your sons out of
the war." But during that same campaign; the Republican Party publicly
charged that Wilson had long committed himself to throw us into the war.
They charged that if he would be defeated he would accomplish that act
during his few remaining months in office; but if re-elected, he would
hold off until after the election. But at that time the American people
looked upon Wilson as a "God-man." Well; Wilson was re-elected and as per
the schedule of the conspirators; he hurled us into the war in 1917. He
used the sinking of the Lusitania as an excuse; a sinking which also was
prearranged. Roosevelt, also a God-man in the eyes of the American people,
followed the same technique in 1941 when he used the prearranged Pearl
Harbor attack as his excuse for hurling us into World War II.
"Now exactly as the conspirators planned; victory for
the Allies would eliminate all the Monarchs of the defeated Nations and
leave all their people leaderless, confused, bewildered and perfectly conditioned
for the one-world government, that the great conspiracy intended would
follow. But there still would be an obstacle; the same obstacle that had
balked the Illuminati and Rothschild at that Congress in Vienna (peace-gathering)
after the Napoleonic Wars. Russia would be on the winning side this time
as it was in 1814 and therefore the Czar would be securely seated on his
throne. Here it is pertinent to note that Russia, under the Czarist regime,
had been the one country in which the Illuminati had never made any headway
nor had the Rothschilds ever been able to infiltrate-in their banking-interests
thus a winning Czar would be more difficult than ever to cope with. Even
if he could be enticed into a so-called "League of Nations;" it was a foregone-conclusion
that he would never, but never, go for a one-world government.
"So even before the outbreak of World War I; the conspirators
had a plan, in the making, to carry-out Nathan Rothschild's vow of 1814
to destroy the Czar and also murder all possible royal heirs to the throne
and it would have to be done before the close of the war. The Russian Bolsheviks
were to be their instruments in this particular plot. From the turn of
the century; the chiefs of the Bolsheviks were Nicolai Lenin, Leon Trotsky,
and later Joseph Stalin. Of course, those were not their true family names.
Prior to the outbreak; Switzerland became their haven. Trotsky's headquarters
was on the lower East Side in New York; largely the habitat of Russian-Jewish
refugees. Both Lenin and Trotsky were similarly bewhiskered and unkempt.
In those days that was the badge of Bolshevism. Both lived well yet neither
had a regular occupation. Neither had any visible means of support, yet
both always had plenty of money. All those mysteries were solved in 1917.
Right from the outset of the war; strange and mysterious goings-on were
taking place in New York. Night after night; Trotsky darted furtively in
and out of Jacob Schiff's palace-mansion and in the dead of those same
nights there were a gathering of hoodlums of New York's lower East Side.
All of them Russian refugees at Trotsky's headquarters and all were going
through some mysterious sort of training-process that was all shrouded
in mystery. Nobody talked; although it did leak out that Schiff was financing
all of Trotsky's activities.
"Then suddenly Trotsky vanished and so did approximately
300 of his trained hoodlums. Actually they were on the high seas in a Schiff-chartered
ship bound for a rendezvous with Lenin and his gang in Switzerland. And
also on that ship was $20,000,000 in gold; the $20,000,000 was provided
to finance the Bolsheviks takeover of Russia. In anticipation of Trotsky's
arrival; Lenin prepared to throw a party in his Switzerland hideaway. Men
of the very highest places in the world were to be guests at that party.
Among them were the mysterious Colonel Edward Mandell House, Woodrow Wilson's
mentor and palsy-walsy, and more important; Schiff's special and confidential
messenger. Another of the expected guests was Warburg of the Warburg Banking
Clan in Germany, who was financing the Kaiser and whom the Kaiser had rewarded
by making him chief of the Secret Police of Germany. In addition; there
were the Rothschilds of London and Paris also Lithenoth, Kakonavich, and
Stalin (who was then the head of a train and bank robbing gang of bandits).
He was known as the "Jesse James of the Urals."
"And here I must remind you that England and France were
then long in the war with Germany and that on February 3, 1917; Wilson
had broken off all diplomatic relations with Germany. Therefore; Warburg,
Colonel House, the Rothschilds, and all those others were enemies but of
course; Switzerland was neutral ground where enemies could meet and be
friends and especially if they had some scheme in common. That Lenin party
was very nearly wrecked by an unforeseen incident. The Schiff-chartered
ship on its way to Switzerland was intercepted and taken into custody by
a British warship. But Schiff quickly rushed orders to Wilson to order
the British to release the ship intact with Trotsky's hoodlums and the
gold. Wilson obeyed. He warned the British that if they refused to release
the ship; the United States would not enter the war in April as he had
faithfully promised a year earlier. The British heeded the warning. Trotsky
arrived in Switzerland and the Lenin party went off as scheduled; but they
still faced what ordinarily would have been the insurmountable obstacle
of getting the Lenin-Trotsky band of terrorists across the border into
Russia. Well; that's where Brother Warburg, chief of the German Secret
Police, came in. He loaded all those thugs into sealed freight-cars and
made all the necessary arrangements for their secret entry into Russia.
The rest is history. The revolution in Russia took place and all members
of the royal Romanoff family were murdered.
"Now my chief objective is to establish beyond even a
remote doubt that communism, so-called, is an integral part of the Illuminati
great conspiracy for the enslavement of the entire world. That communism,
so-called, is merely their weapon and bogy-man word to terrify the peoples
of the whole world and that the conquest of Russia and the creation of
communism was, in great part, organized by Schiff and the other international
bankers right in our own city of New York. A fantastic story? Yes. Some
might even refuse to believe it. Well; for the benefit of any "Doubting
Thomas"; I will prove it by reminding that just a few years ago Charlie
Knickerbocker, a Hearst newspaper columnist, published an interview with
John Schiff, grandson of Jacob, in which young Schiff confirmed the entire
story and named the figure old Jacob contributed, $20,000,000.
"If anybody still has even a remote doubt that the entire
menace of communism was created by the masterminds of the great conspiracy
right in our own city of New York; I will cite the following historical
fact. All records show that when Lenin and Trotsky engineered the capture
of Russia; they operated as heads of the Bolshevik's party. Now "Bolshevism"
is a purely Russian word. The masterminds realized that Bolshevism could
never be sold as an ideology to any but the Russian people. So in April
1918; Jacob Schiff dispatched Colonel House to Moscow with orders to Lenin,
Trotsky, and Stalin to change the name of their regime to the Communist
Party and to adopt the Karl Marx "Manifesto" as the constitution of the
Communist Party. Lenin, Trotsky, and Stalin obeyed; and in that year of
1918 was when the Communist party and the menace of communism came into
being. All this is confirmed in Webster's Collegiate Dictionary, Fifth
Edition.
"In short; communism was created by the capitalists. Thus;
until November 11, 1918, the entire fiendish plan of the conspirators worked
perfectly. All the great nations, including the United States, were war-weary,
devastated, and mourning their dead. Peace was the great universal desire.
Thus when it was proposed by Wilson to set up a "League of Nations" to
ensure peace; all the great nations, with no Russian Czar to stand in their
way, jumped on that bandwagon without even stopping to read the fine print
in that insurance-policy. That is; all but one; the United States, the
very one that Schiff and his co-conspirators least expected would balk
and that was their one fatal mistake in that early plot. You see; when
Schiff planted Woodrow Wilson in the White House; the conspirators assumed
that they had the United States in the proverbial bag. Wilson had been
perfectly built-up as a great humanitarian. He supposedly became established
as a God-man with the American people. There was every reason for the conspirators
to have believed that he would have easily hornswaggled Congress into buying
the "League of Nations," sight-unseen, exactly as the Congress of 1945
bought the "United Nations," sight-unseen. But there was one man in the
Senate in 1918 who saw through that scheme just as the Russian Czar did
in 1814. He was a man of great political stature; almost as great as that
of Teddy Roosevelt and fully as astute. He was highly respected and trusted
by all members of both houses of Congress and by the American people. The
name of that great and patriotic American was Henry Cabot Lodge; not the
phony of today who called himself Henry Cabot Lodge, Jr., until he was
exposed. Lodge completely unmasked Wilson and kept the United States out
of the "League of Nations."
NOTE:
Shortly thereafter; the Illuminati had created the 17th
Amendment to do away with appointed Senators by the legislatures of the
several states of the Union. Whereas, before that, the Illuminati controlled
the press; they now control the election of the U.S. Senators. The Illuminati/CFR
had little or no power over the individual legislatures of the several
states or their appointed U.S. Senators prior to the [purported] ratification
of the 17th Amendment. Although the 17th Amendment supposedly amends the
method of placing Senators into the U.S. Senate; the 17th Amendment was
never ratified in accordance to the last sentence of Article V of the U.S.
Constitution. Two states, New Jersey and Utah, voted down the proposition
and nine other states never voted at all. Whereas the states of New Jersey
and Utah expressly refused to relinquish their "suffrage" in the Senate
while the other non-voting nine states never gave their "express" consent;
the proposition for the 17th Amendment did not obtain the "unanimous" vote
required for its adoption. Furthermore; the resolution that created the
"Proposition" did not pass the Senate with a "unanimous" vote and as those
Senators of that day were "appointed" by the legislatures of their states;
those "negative" votes or "non-votes" were made in the name of their respective
state.
"Here it becomes of great interest to know the real reason
for the Wilson League of Nations flop. As I previously stated, Schiff was
sent to the United States to carry out four specific assignments:
1. And most important, was to acquire complete control
of the U.S. money-system.
2. As outlined in the original Weishaupt Illuminati-blueprint,
he was to find the right kind of men to serve as stooges for the great
conspiracy and promote them into the highest offices in our federal government;
our Congress, our U.S. Supreme Court, and all federal agencies, such as
the State Department, the Pentagon, the Treasury Department, etc.. (Ephesians
6:12 - K.J.A.V.*).
3. Destroy the unity of the American people by creating
minority-groups-strife throughout the nation; especially between the whites
and blacks as outlined in Israel Cohen's book.
4. Create a movement to destroy religion in the United
States with Christianity to be the chief target or victim.
* Ephesians 6:12 For we wrestle not against flesh and
blood, but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers
of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in high
[places].
"In addition; he was strongly reminded of the imperative
directive of the Illuminati-blueprint to achieve full-control of all mass-communications
media to be used to brainwash the people into believing and accepting all
of the maneuverings of the great conspiracy. Schiff was warned that only
control of the press, at that time our only mass-communications media,
would enable him to destroy the unity of the American people.
"Now then; Schiff and his co-conspirators did set up the
"NAACP" (the "National Association for the Advancement of the Coloured
People") in 1909 and in 1913 he set up the "Anti-defamation League of the
B'nai B'rith;" both were to create the necessary strife; but in the early
years; the "ADL" operated very timidly. Perhaps for fear of a "pogrom-like"
action by an aroused and enraged American people and the "NAACP" was practically
dormant because its white leadership didn't realize that they would have
to develop fire-brand Negro leaders, such as Martin Luther King for one,
to spark the then completely satisfied contented mass of Negroes.
"In addition; he, Schiff, was busy developing and infiltrating
the stooges to serve in all high places in our Washington government and
in the job of acquiring control of our money-system and the creation of
the "16th Amendment." He also was very busy with the organizing of the
plot for the takeover of Russia. In short; he was kept so busy with all
those jobs that he completely overlooked the supreme job of acquiring complete-control
of our mass-communications media. That oversight was a direct cause for
Wilson's failure to lure the United States into the "League of Nations"
because when Wilson decided to go to the people to overcome the opposition
of the Lodge-controlled Senate; despite his established but phony reputation
as a great humanitarian, he found himself faced by a solidly united people
and by a loyal press whose only ideology was "Americanism" and the American
way of life. At that time; due to the ineptness and ineffectiveness of
the "ADL" and the "NAACP," there were no organized minority-groups; no
Negro problems; no so-called antisemitic-problems to sway the people's
thinking. There were no lefts and there were no rights nor any prejudices
for crafty exploitations. Thus Wilson's "League of Nations" appeal fell
on deaf ears. That was the end of Woodrow Wilson; the conspirators great
humanitarian. He quickly abandoned his crusade and returned to Washington
where he shortly died an imbecile brought on by syphilis and that was the
end of the "League of Nations" as a corridor into one-world government.
"Of course that debacle was a terrible disappointment
to the masterminds of the Illuminati conspiracy; but they were not discouraged.
As I have previously stressed, this enemy never quits; they simply decided
to reorganize and try from scratch again. By this time Schiff was very
old and slow. He knew it. He knew that the conspiracy needed a new younger
and more active leadership. So on his orders; Colonel House and Bernard
Barouk organized and set up what they called the "Council on Foreign Relations;"
the new name under which the Illuminati would continue to function in the
United States. The hierarchy, officers, and directors of the "CFR" is composed
principally of descendants of the original Illuminati; many of whom had
abandoned their old family name and acquired new Americanized names. For
one example; we have Dillon, who was Secretary of Treasury of the United
States, whose original name was Laposky. Another example is Pauley, head
of the CBS TV channel, whose true name is Palinsky. The membership of the
CFR is approximately 1,000 in number and contains the heads of virtually
every industrial empire in America such as Blough, president of the U.S.
Steel Corporation; Rockefeller, king of the oil industry; Henry Ford, II,
and so on. And of course; all the international bankers. Also; the heads
of the "tax-free" foundations are officers and/or active CFR members. In
short; all the men who provided the money and the influence to elect the
CFR chosen Presidents of the United States, the Congressmen, the Senators,
and who decide the appointments of our various Secretaries of State, of
the Treasury, of every important federal agency are members of the CFR
and they are very obedient members indeed.
"Now just to cement that fact; I will mention the names
of the few of the United States Presidents who were members of the CFR.
Franklin Roosevelt, Herbert Hoover, Dwight D. Eisenhower, Jack Kennedy,
Nixon, and George Bush. Others who were considered for the presidency are
Thomas E. Dewey, Adlai Stevenson, and vice-president of a CFR subsidiary;
Barry Goldwater. Among the important cabinet members of the various administrations
we have John Foster Dulles, Allen Dulles, Cordell Hull, John J. MacLeod,
Morganthau, Clarence Dillon, Rusk, McNamara, and just to emphasize the
"red color" of the "CFR"; we have as members such men as Alger Hess, Ralph
Bunche, Pusvolsky, Haley Dexter White (real name Weiss), Owen Lattimore,
Phillip Jaffey, etc., etc.. Simultaneously; they were flooding thousands
of homosexuals and other black (not Negro) malleable characters into all
the federal agencies from the White House on down. Do you remember Johnson's
great friends; Jenkins and Bobby Baker?
"Now there were many jobs the new CFR had to accomplish.
They required much help. So their first job was to set up various "subsidiaries"
to whom they assigned special objectives. I can't name all the subsidiaries
in this recording; but the following are a few: the "Foreign Policy Association"
("FPA"), the "World Affairs Council" ("WAC"), the "Business Advisory Council"
("BAC"), the notorious "ADA" ("Americans for Democratic
Action" virtually headed by Walter Ruther), the notorious "13-13" in Chicago;
Barry Goldwater was, and no doubt still is a vice-president of one of the
CFR subsidiaries. In addition; the CFR set up special committees in every
state in the Union to whom they assigned the various state operations.
"Simultaneously; the Rothschilds set up similar CFR-like
control-groups in England, France, Germany, and other Nations to control
world conditions and cooperate with the CFR to bring about another world
war. But the CFR's first and foremost job was to get complete-control of
our mass-communications media. The control of the press was assigned to
Rockefeller. Thus; Henry Luce, who recently died, was financed to set up
a number of national magazines, among them "Life," "Time," "Fortune," and
others, which publish "U.S.S.R." in America. The Rockefellers also directly
or indirectly financed the Coles Brothers' "Look magazine" and a chain
of newspapers. They also financed a man named Sam Newhouse to buy up and
build a chain of newspapers all over the country. And the late Eugene Myer,
one of the founders of CFR, bought the "Washington Post," "Newsweek," the
"Weekly magazine", and other publications. At the same time; the CFR began
to develop and nurture a new-breed of scurrilous columnists and editorials-writers
such as Walter Lippman, Drew Pearson, the Alsops, Herbert Matthews, Erwin
Canham, and others of that ilk who called themselves "Liberals" who proclaimed
that "Americanism" is "isolationism;" that "isolationism" is "war-mongerism;"
that "anti-communism;" is "anti-semiticism" and "racism." All that took
time of course; but today our "weeklies," published by patriotic organizations,
is completely controlled by CFR stooges and thus they finally succeeded
in breaking us up into a Nation of quarreling, wrangling, squabbling, hating
factions. Now if you still wonder about this slanted news and outright
lies you read in your newspaper; you now have the answer. To the Lehmans,
Goldman-Sachs, Kuhn-Loebs, and the Warburgs; the CFR assigned the job of
getting control of the motion-picture industry, Hollywood, radio, and television;
and believe me they succeeded. If you still wonder about the strange propaganda
broadcast by the Ed Morrows and others of that ilk; you now have the answer.
If you wonder about all the smut, sex, pornography, and mixed-marriage
films you see in your movie-theater and on your television set (all
of which is demoralizing our youth); you now have the answer.
"Now, to refresh your memory, let's go back for a moment.
Wilson's flop had torpedoed all chances of transforming that "League of
Nations" into the conspirators hope for a one-world government-housing
so the Jacob Schiff plot had to be done all over again and they organized
the CFR to do it. We also know how successfully the CFR did that job of
brainwashing and destroying the unity of the American people. But as was
the case with the Schiff plot; the climax and the creation of a new housing
for their one world government required another world war. A war that would
be even more horrible and more devastating than the first world war in
order to get the people of the world to again clamor for peace and a means
to end all wars. But the CFR realized that the aftermath of World War II
would have to be more carefully planned so that there would be no escape
from the new one-world trap - another "League of Nations" that would emerge
from the new war. That trap we now know as the "United Nations" and they
hit upon a perfect strategy to ensure that no one escaped. Here is how
they did it.
"In 1943, in the midst of the war, they prepared the framework
for the United Nations and it was handed-over to Roosevelt and our State
Department to be given birth by Alger Hess, Palvosky, Dalton, Trumbull,
and other American traitors, thus making the whole scheme a United States'
baby. Then to fix our parenthood; New York City was to become the nursery
for the monstrosity. After that we could hardly walk-out on our own baby
now could we? Anyway; that's how the conspirators figured it would work
and so far it has. The liberal Rockefeller donated the land for the United
Nations' building.
"The United Nations' charter was written by Alger Hess,
Palvosky, Dalton, Trumbull, and other CFR stooges. A phony, so-called,
U.N. conference was set up in San Francisco in 1945. All the, so-called,
representatives of 50-odd Nations gathered there and promptly signed the
Charter and the despicable traitor, Alger Hess, flew to Washington with
it; elatedly submitted it to our Senate, and the Senate (elected by our
people to safeguard our security) signed the Charter without so much as
reading it. The question is: "How many of our Senators were, even then,
traitorous stooges of the CFR?" Anyway; it was thus that the people accepted
the "United Nations" as a "holy of holies."
Again and again and again we have been startled, shocked,
bewildered, and horrified by their mistakes in Berlin, in Korea, in Laos,
in Katanga, in Cuba, in Vietnam; mistakes that always favoured the enemy;
never the United States. Under the law of averages; they should have made
at least one or two mistakes in our favour; but they never did. What's
the answer? The answer is the "CFR" and the parts played by their subsidiaries
and stooges in Washington D.C., thus we know that complete control of our
foreign-relation policy is the key to the success of the entire Illuminati
one-world-order plot. Here is further proof.
"Earlier I fully established that Schiff and his gang
had financed the Lenin, Trotsky, Stalin, takeover of Russia and fashioned
its communist regime into becoming their chief instrument to keep the world
in turmoil and to finally terrorize all of us into seeking peace in a U.N.
one-world government. But the conspirators knew that the "Moscow gang"
could not become such an instrument until and unless the whole world would
accept the communist regime as the legitimate "de jure government" of Russia.
Only one thing could accomplish that and that is the recognition by the
United States. The conspirators figured that the whole world would follow
our lead and that's their bag, to induce Harding, Coolidge, and Hoover,
to grant that recognition. But all three refused. As a result of the late
1920's; the Stalin regime was in dire straits. Despite all purges and secret-police
controls; the Russian people were growing more and more resistive. It is
a matter of record, admitted by Lipdenoff, that during 1931 and 1932; Stalin
and his whole gang were always packed and ready for instant flight.
"Then in November 1932; the conspirators achieved their
greatest coup; they landed Franklin Roosevelt in the White House, crafty,
unscrupulous, and utterly without conscience. That charlatan traitor turned
the trick for them. Without even asking consent of Congress; he unlawfully
proclaimed recognition for the Stalin regime. That did it. And exactly
as the conspirators figured; the whole world did follow our lead. Automatically
that squelched the previously growing resistance-movement of the Russian
people. That automatically launched the greatest menace the civilized world
has ever known. The rest is too well known to need repeating.
"We know how Roosevelt and his traitorous State Department
kept building up the communist menace right here in our country and thus
throughout the world. We know how he perpetuated that whole Harbour atrocity
for his excuse to hurl us into World War II. We know all about his secret
meetings with Stalin at Yalta and how he, with Eisenhower's help, delivered
the Balkans and Berlin to Moscow and last but by no means least; we know
that the 20th century Benedict Arnold not only dragged us into that new
corridor; the United Nations into the one-world government, but actually
schemed all the arrangements to plant it within our country. In short;
the day that Roosevelt entered the White House; the CFR conspirators regained
full-control of our foreign-relations machinery and firmly established
the United Nations as the housing for the Illuminati one-world government.
"I wish to stress one other very vital point. That Wilson
"League of Nations" flop brought Schiff and his gang to the realization
that control of just the Democratic Party was not enough. True! They could
create a crisis during the Republican administration as they did in 1929
with their federal reserve manufactured crash and depression which would
bring another Democrat stooge back into the White House; but they realized
that a four-year disruption in their control of our foreign-relation policies
could play havoc with the progress of their conspiracy. It could even break-up
their entire strategy as it almost did before Roosevelt saved it with his
recognition of the Stalin regime.
"Thereupon, after that Wilson debacle, they began to formulate
plans to achieve control of both of our national parties. But that posed
a problem for them. They needed manpower with stooges in the Republican
Party with additional manpower for the Democratic Party and because control
of just the man in the White House would not be enough; they would have
to provide that man with trained stooges for his entire cabinet. Men to
head the State Department, the Treasury Department, the Pentagon, the CFR,
the USIA, etc.. In short; every member of the various cabinets would have
to be a chosen tool of the CFR, such as Rusk and McNamara, as well as all
the under-Secretaries and assistant-Secretaries. That would give the conspirators
absolute control of all our policies, both domestic and most-important;
foreign. That course of action would require a reserve-pool of trained
stooges; instantaneously-ready for administrative changes and for all other
exigencies. All such stooges would of necessity have to be men of national
reputation, high in the esteem of the people; but they would have to be
men without honor, without scruple, and without conscience. These men would
have to be vulnerable to blackmail. It is needless for me to stress how
well the CFR succeeded. The immortal Joe McCarthy fully revealed that there
are thousands of such security-risks in all federal agencies. Scott MacLeod
unmasked thousands more and you know the price that Ortega had to pay,
and is still paying, for his expositions before a Senate Committee of the
traitors in the State Department and you know that the men in the State
Department, who delivered Cuba to Castro, have not only been shielded;
but promoted.
"Now let's go back to the crux of the whole one-world
government plot and the maneuvering necessary to create another "League
of Nations" to house such a government. As I have already stated; the conspirators
knew that only another world war was vital for the success of their plot.
It would have to be such a horrifying world war that the peoples of the
world would cry-out for the creation of some kind of a world-organization
that could secure an everlasting peace. But how could such a war be brought
about? All the European nations were at peace. None had any quarrels with
their neighboring nations and certainly their stools in Moscow wouldn't
dare to start a war. Even Stalin realized that it would mean the overthrow
of his regime unless, so-called, "patriotism" would weld the Russian people
behind him.
"But the conspirators had to have a war. They had to find
or create some kind of an incident to launch it. They found it in a little
inconspicuous and repulsive little man who called himself "Adolf Hitler."
Hitler, an impecunious Austrian house-painter, had been a corporal in the
German army. He made the defeat of Germany into a personal grievance. He
began to "rabble-rouse" about it in the Munich, Germany area. He began
to spout about restoring the greatness of the German Empire and the might
of the German solidarity. He advocated the restoration of the old German
military to be used to conquer the whole world. Strangely enough; Hitler,
the little clown that he was, could deliver a rabble-rousing speech and
he did have a certain kind of magnetism. But the new authorities in Germany
didn't want anymore wars and they promptly threw the obnoxious Austrian
house-painter into a prison-cell.
"Aha! Here was the man, decided the conspirators, who,
if properly directed and financed, could be the key to another world war.
So while he was in prison; they had Rudolph Hess and Goering write a book
which they titled: "Mein Kampf" and attributed the authorship to Hitler;
exactly as Lipdenoff wrote: "Mission to Moscow" and attributed the authorship
to Joseph Davies; then our ambassador to Russia and a stooge of the CFR.
In "Mein Kampf;" the Hitler pseudo-author outlined his grievances and how
he would restore the German people to their former greatness. The conspirators
then arranged for a wide circulation of the book among the German people
in order to arouse a fanatical following for him. On his release from prison
(also arranged by the conspirators); they began to groom and finance him
to travel to other parts of Germany to deliver his rabble-rousing speeches.
Soon he gathered a growing following among other veterans of the war, that
soon spread to the masses, who began to see in him a saviour for their
beloved Germany. Then came his leadership of what he called "his brown-shirt
army" and the march on Berlin. That required a great deal of financing;
but the Rothschilds, the Warburgs, and others of the conspirators provided
all the money he needed. Gradually Hitler became the idol of the German
people and they then overthrew the Von Hindenburg government and Hitler
became the new F¸hrer. But that still was no reason for a war. The
rest of the world watched Hitler's rise but saw no reason to interfere
in what was distinctly a domestic-condition within Germany. Certainly none
of the other Nations felt it was a reason for another war against Germany
and the German people were not yet incited into enough of a frenzy to commit
any acts against any neighboring nation; not even against France; that
would lead to a war. The conspirators realized they would have to create
such a frenzy; a frenzy that would cause the German people to throw caution
to the winds and at the same time; horrify the whole world. And incidentally;
"Mein Kampf" was actually a follow-up of Karl Marx's book: "A World Without
Jews."
"The conspirators suddenly remembered how the Schiff-Rothschild
gang had engineered the pogroms in Russia which slaughtered many, many
thousands of Jews and created a world-wide hatred for Russia and they decided
to use that same unconscionable trick to inflame the new Hitler led German
people into a murderous-hatred of the Jews. Now it is true that the German
people never had any particular affection for the Jews; but neither did
they have an ingrained hatred for them. Such a hatred would have to be
manufactured so Hitler was to create it. This idea more than appealed to
Hitler. He saw in it the grisly gimmick to make him the "God-man" (christ)
of the German people (with his self-proclaimed 1,000 year rule - Revelation
13:11-18).
King of kings' Bible:-
Revelation 13:11 And I beheld another beast coming
up out of the earth; and it had two horns like a lamb, and he (Hitler)
spoke as the dragon.
13:12 And he exerciseth all the power of the first
beast before him, and causeth the earth and them which dwell therein to
worship the first beast, whose deadly wound was healed.
13:13 And he doeth great wonders, so that he maketh
fire come down from heaven on the earth in the sight of men,
13:14 And deceiveth them that dwell on the earth by
[the means of] those miracles which he had power to do in the presence
of the beast; saying to them that dwell on the earth, that they should
make an image to the beast, which had the wound by the sword, and did live
(the Roman Empire - eagle and swastika emblems).
13:15 And he had power to give life unto the image
of the beast, that the image of the beast should both speak, and cause
that as many as would not worship the image of the beast should be killed.
13:16 And he causeth all, both small and great, rich
and poor, free and bond, to receive a mark (Deutsch) in their right hand,
or in their foreheads (Marx-ism):
13:17 And that no man might buy or sell, save he that
had the mark, or the name of the beast, or the number of its name.
13:18 Here is wisdom. Let him that hath understanding
count the number of the beast: for it is the number of man (created 6th.
day); and its number [is] Six hundred threescore [and] six (man, man, man).
"Thus craftily inspired and coached by his financial-advisers,
the Warburgs, the Rothschilds, and all the Illuminati masterminds; he blamed
the Jews for the hated "Versailles Treaty" and for the financial ruination
that followed the war. The rest is history. We know all about the Hitler
concentration-camps and the incineration of hundred of thousands of Jews.
Not the 6,000,000 nor even the 600,000 claimed by the conspirators; but
it was enough. And here let me reiterate how little the internationalist
bankers, the Rothschilds, Schiffs, Lehmans, Warburgs, Barouks, cared about
their racial brethren who were the victims of their nefarious schemes.
In their eyes; the slaughter of the several hundred thousand innocent Jews
by Hitler didn't bother them at all. They considered it a necessary sacrifice
to further their Illuminati one-world plot just as the slaughter of the
many millions in the wars that followed was a similar necessary sacrifice.
And here is another grisly detail about those concentration-camps. Many
of the Hitler soldier-executioners in those camps had previously been sent
to Russia to acquire their arts of torture and brutalization so as to emphasize
the horrors of the atrocities.
"All this created a new world-wide hatred for the German
people but it still did not provide a cause for a war. Thereupon Hitler
was incited to demand the "Sudetenland"; and you remember how Chamberlain
and the then diplomats of Czechoslovakia and France surrendered to that
demand. That demand led to further Hitlerian demands for territories in
Poland and in the French Czar territories and those demands were rejected.
Then came his pact with Stalin. Hitler had been screaming hatred against
communism (Oh how he ranted against communism); but actually nazism was
nothing but socialism (national-socialism - Nazi), and communism is, in
fact, socialism. But Hitler disregarded all that. He entered into a pact
with Stalin to attack and divide Poland between them. While Stalin marched
into one part of Poland (for which he was never blamed [the Illuminati
masterminds saw to that]); Hitler launched a "blitzkrieg" on Poland from
his side. The conspirators finally had their new world war and what a horrible
war it was.
"And in 1945; the conspirators finally achieved the "United
Nations"; their new housing for their one-world government. And truly
amazing; all of the American people hailed this foul outfit as a "Holy
of Holies." Even after all the true-facts about how the U.N. was created
were revealed; the American people continued to worship that evil outfit.
Even after Alger Hess was unmasked as a Soviet spy and traitor; the American
people continued to believe in the U.N.. Even after I had publicly revealed
the secret-agreement between Hess and Mulatoff that a Russian would always
be the head of the military-secretariat and by that token; the real master
of the U.N.. But most of the American people continued to believe that
the U.N. could do no wrong. Even after Trig D. Lee, the first Secretary-general
of the "U.N." confirmed that Hess-Mulatoff secret-agreement in his book:
"For The Cause of Peace;" Vasialia was given a leave of absence by the
U.N. so that he could take command of the North Koreans and Red Chinese
who were fighting the so-called U.N. police-action under our own General
McArthur, who; by orders of the U.N.; was fired by the pusillanimous president
Truman in order to prevent him from winning that war. Our people still
believed in the U.N. despite our 150,000 sons who were murdered and maimed
in that war; the people continued to regard the U.N. as a sure means for
peace even after it was revealed in 1951 that the U.N. (using our own American
soldiers under U.N. command, under the U.N. flag, in collusion with our
traitorous State Department and the Pentagon) had been invading many small
cities in California and Texas in order to perfect their plan for the complete
takeover of our country. Most of our people brushed it off and continued
their belief that the U.N. is a "Holy of Holies." (Rather than
The
Ark of The Covenant).
"Do you know that the U.N. Charter was written by traitor
Alger Hess, Mulatoff, and Vyshinsky? That Hess and Mulatoff had made within
that secret-agreement that the military-chief of the U.N. was always to
be a Russian appointed by Moscow? Do you know that at their secret meetings
at Yalta; Roosevelt and Stalin, at the behest of the Illuminati operating
as the CFR, decided that the U.N. must be placed on American soil? Do you
know that most of the U.N. Charter was copied intact, word for word, from
the Marx "Manifesto" and the Russian, so-called, constitution? Do you know
that only the two Senators who voted against the U.N. Charter had read
it? Do you know that since the U.N. was founded; communist enslavement
has grown from 250,000 to 1,000,000,000? Do you know that since the U.N.
was founded to insure peace there have been at least 20 major wars incited
by the U.N; just as they incited war against little Rhodesia and Kuwait?
Do you know that under the U.N. set-up; the American taxpayers have been
forced to make up the U.N. Treasury-deficit of many millions of dollars
because of Russia's refusal to pay her share? Do you know that the U.N.
had never passed a resolution condemning Russia or her so-called satellites;
but always condemns our Allies? Do you know that J. Edgar Hoover said:
"the overwhelming-majority of the communist-delegations to the U.N. are
espionage-agents" and that 66 Senators voted for a "Consular Treaty" to
open our entire country to Russian spies and saboteurs? Do you know that
the U.N. helps Russia's conquest of the world by preventing the free world
from taking any action whatsoever except to debate each new aggression
in the U.N. General Assembly? Do you know that at the time of the Korean
War there were 60 Nations in the U.N.; yet 95% of the U.N. forces were
our American sons and practically 100% of the cost was paid by the United
States taxpayers?
"And surely you know that the U.N. policy during the Korean
and Vietnam Wars was to prevent us from winning those wars? Do you know
that all the battle-plans of General McArthur had to go first to the U.N.
to be relayed to Vasialia, Commander of the North Koreans and Red Chinese,
and that any future wars fought by our sons under the U.N. flag would have
to be fought by our sons under the control of the U.N. Security Council?
Do you know that the U.N. has never done anything about the 80,000 Russian
Mongolian troops that occupy Hungary?
"Where was the U.N. when the Hungarian freedom-fighters
were slaughtered by the Russians? Do you know that the U.N. and its peace-army
turned the Congo over to the communists? Do you know that the U.N.'s own,
so-called, peace-force was used to crush, rape, and kill the white anti-communists
in Katanga? Do you know that the U.N. stood by and did nothing while Red
China invaded Laos and Vietnam? That it did nothing while Nero invaded
Goa and other Portuguese territories? Do you know that the U.N. was directly-responsible
for aiding Castro? That it does absolutely nothing about the many thousands
of Cuban youngsters who are shipped to Russia for communist-indoctrination.
"Do you know that Adlai Stevenson said: "the free world
must expect to lose more and more decisions in the U.N.." Do you know that
the U.N. openly proclaims that its chief objective is a "one-world government"
which means "one-world laws," "one-world court," "one-world schools," and
a "one-world church" in which Christianity would be prohibited?
"Do you know that a U.N. law has been passed to disarm
all American citizens and to transfer all our armed forces to the U.N.?
Such a law was secretly signed by 'saint' Jack Kennedy in 1961. Do you
realize how that fits in with Article 47, paragraph 3, of the U.N. Charter,
which states and I quote: "the military staff committee of the U.N. shall
be responsible through the Security Council for the strategic direction
of all armed forces placed at the disposal of the Security Council" and
when and if all our armed forces are transferred to the U.N.; your sons
would be forced to serve and die under the U.N. command all over the world.
This will happen unless you fight to get the U.S. out of the U.N..
"Do you know that Congressman James B. Utt has submitted
a bill to get the U.S. out of the U.N. and a resolution to prevent our
President from forcing-us to support the U.N. embargoes on Rhodesia? Well,
he has and many people all over the country are writing to their representatives
to support the Utt bill and resolution. Fifty Congressmen, spear-headed
by Schweiker and Moorhead of Pennsylvania, have introduced a bill to immediately
transfer all our armed forces to the U.N.? Can you imagine such brazen
treason? Is your Congressman one of those 50 traitors? Find out and take
immediate action against him and help Congressman Utt.
"Now do you know that the "National Council of Churches"
passed a resolution in San Francisco which states that the United States
will soon have to subordinate its will to that of the U.N. and that all
American citizens must be prepared to accept it? Is your church a member
of the "National Council of Churches?" In connection with that; bear in
mind that God is never mentioned in the U.N. Charter and their meetings
are never opened with prayer.
"The creators of the U.N. stipulated in advance that there
should be no mention of God or Jesus Christ in the U.N. Charter or in its
U.N. headquarters. Does your pastor subscribe to that? Find out! Furthermore;
do you know that the great majority of the, so-called, Nations in the U.N.
are anti-christianity and that the U.N. is a completely Godless organization
by orders of its creators; the CFR Illuminati. Have you heard enough of
the truth about the Illuminati's United Nations? Do you want to leave your
sons and our precious country to the unholy mercy of the Illuminati's United
Nations? If you don't; write, telegraph, or phone your Representatives
and Senators that they must support Congressman Utt's bill to get the U.S.
out of the U.N. and the U.N. out of the U.S.. Do it today; now, before
you forget! It is the only salvation for your sons and for our country.
Ezekiel 13:1 And the Word of the "I AM" came unto me,
saying,
13:2 Son of man, prophesy against the prophets of
Israel that prophesy, and say thou unto them that prophesy out of their
own hearts, Hear ye the Word of the "I AM";
13:3 Thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Woe unto the foolish
prophets (politicians), that follow their
own spirit, and have seen nothing!
13:4 O Israel (Britain and
U.S.A.
- the Two Witnesses and related nations), thy
prophets (politicians) are like the "foxes in the deserts" (Operation "Desert
Fox").
13:5 Ye have not gone up into the gaps, neither made
up the hedge for the "House of Israel" (the Ten "Lost" Tribes of Israel,
which include and are led by America and Britain) to stand in the battle
in The Day of the "I AM" (Armageddon).
13:6 They have seen vanity and lying divination, saying,
The "I AM" saith: and the "I AM" hath not sent them: and they have made
[others] to hope that their words would be confirmed.
13:7 Have ye not seen a vain vision, and have ye not
spoken a lying divination, whereas ye say, The "I AM" saith [it]; albeit
I have not spoken?
13:8 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Because
ye have spoken vanity, and seen lies, therefore, behold, I [am] against
you, saith the Lord "I AM".
13:9 And Mine hand shall be upon the prophets (politicians)
that see vanity, and that divine lies: they shall not be in the assembly
of My people, neither shall they be written in the writing of the "House
of Israel", neither shall they enter into the land of Israel; and ye shall
know that I [am] the Lord "I AM".
13:10 Because, even because they have seduced My people,
saying, Peace; and [there was] NO peace; and one built up a wall (U.N.O.
and NATO), and, lo, others daubed it with untempered [mortar]:
13:11 Say unto them which daub [it] with untempered
[mortar], that it shall fall: there shall be an overflowing shower; and
ye, O great hailstones, shall fall; and a stormy wind (Operation "Desert
Storm") shall rend [it].
13:12 Lo, when the wall is fallen, shall it not be
said unto you, Where [is] the daubing wherewith ye have daubed [it]?
13:13 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; I will
even rend [it] with a stormy wind in my fury; and there shall be an overflowing
shower in Mine anger, and great hailstones in [My] fury to consume [it].
13:14 So will I break down the wall (U.N.)
that ye have daubed with untempered [mortar], and bring it down to the
ground, so that the (Illuminati) foundation thereof shall be discovered,
and it shall fall, and ye shall be consumed in the midst thereof: and ye
shall know that I [am] the "I AM".
13:15 Thus will I accomplish My wrath upon the wall
(U.N.O. and NATO), and upon them that have daubed it with untempered [mortar],
and will say unto you, The wall [is] no [more], neither they that daubed
it;
"Now I have one more vital message to deliver. As I told
you; one of the four specific assignments Rothschild gave Jacob Schiff
was to create a movement to destroy religion in the United States, with
Christianity to be the chief target. For a very obvious reason; the "Anti-defamation
League" wouldn't dare to attempt to do it because such an attempt could
create the most terrible blood-bath in the history of the world; not only
for the "ADL" and the conspirators, but for the millions of innocent Jews.
Schiff turned that job over to Rockefeller for another specific reason.
The destruction of Christianity could be accomplished only by those who
are entrusted to preserve it. By the pastors; the
men of the cloth.
2 Corinthians 11:13 For such [are] false apostles,
deceitful
workers, transforming themselves into the apostles of Christ.
11:14 And no marvel; for Satan himself is transformed
into an angel of light.
11:15 Therefore [it is] no great thing if his ministers
also be transformed as the ministers of righteousness; whose end shall
be according to their works.
"As a starter; John D. Rockefeller picked up a young,
so-called, Christian minister by the name of Dr. Harry F. Ward. Reverend
Ward if you please. At that time he was teaching religion at the "Union
Theological Seminary." Rockefeller found a very willing "Judas" in this
Reverend and thereupon in 1907; he financed him to set up the "Methodist
Foundation of Social Service" and Ward's job was to teach bright young
men to become, so-called, ministers of Christ and to place them as pastors
of churches. While teaching them to become ministers; the Reverend Ward
also taught them how to subtly and craftily preach to their congregations
that the entire story of Christ was a myth; to cast doubts on the divinity
of Christ; to cast doubts about the virgin Mary;
in short: to cast doubts on Christianity* as a whole. It was not
to be a direct-attack, but much of it to be done by crafty-insinuation
that was to be applied, in particular, to the youth in the Sunday schools.
Remember Lenin's statement: "give me just one generation of youth and I'll
transform the whole world." Then in 1908; the "Methodist foundation of
Social Service," which incidentally was America's first communist front-organization,
changed its name to the "Federal Council of Churches." By 1950; the "Federal
Council of Churches" was becoming very suspect; so in 1950 they changed
the name to the "National Council of Churches." Do I have to tell you more
about how this "National Council of Churches" is deliberately destroying
faith in Christianity? I don't think so; but this I will tell you. If you
are a member of any congregation whose pastor and church are members of
this Judas organization; you and your contributions are helping the Illuminati's
plot to destroy Christianity and your faith in God and Jesus Christ, thus
you are deliberately delivering your children to be indoctrinated with
disbelief in God and Church and which can easily transform them into "atheists."
Find out immediately if your Church is a member of the "National Council
of Churches" and for the love of God and your children; if it is, withdraw
from it at once. However; let me warn you that the same destroying religion
process has been infiltrated into other denominations. If you have seen
the "Negro on Selma" and other such demonstrations; you have seen how the
Negro mobs are led and encouraged by ministers (and even Catholic
priests and nuns) who march along with them. There are many individual
churches and pastors who are honest and sincere. Find one such for yourself
and for your children. (All you have to learn is if your "church" is a
501 (c) 3 arm of the state. If it is, you should immediately stop attending
it, and stop supporting it with your "tax-deductible" donations. - David
G.) (Better still, read the King of kings' Bible
excerpt - Matthew 23:8-10, at the end of this article).
* Ephesians 4:14 That we [henceforth] be no
more children, tossed to and fro, and carried about with every wind of
doctrine, by the sleight of men, [and] cunning craftiness, whereby they
lie in wait to deceive;
Galatians 2:4 And that because of false brethren
unawares brought in, who came in privily to spy out our liberty which we
have in Christ Jesus, that they might bring us into bondage:
2 Corinthians 11:13 For such [are] false apostles,
deceitful
workers, transforming themselves into the apostles of Christ.
"Incidentally; this same Reverend Harry F. Ward was also
one of the founders of the "American Civil Liberties Union;" a notorious
pro-Communist organization. He was the actual head of it from 1920 to 1940.
He also was a co-founder of the "American League against War and Fascism"
which, under Browder, became the "Communist Party of the United States."
In short; Ward's entire background reeked of communism and he was identified
as a member of the Communist party. He died a vicious traitor to both his
church and country and this was the man old John D. Rockefeller picked
and financed to destroy America's Christian religion in accordance with
the orders given to Schiff by the Rothschilds.
"In conclusion I have this to say. You probably are familiar
with the story of how one Dr. Frankenstein created a monster to do his
will of destroying his chosen victims but how instead in the end; that
monster turned on his own creator, Frankenstein, and destroyed him. Well;
the Illuminati/CFR has created a monster called the "United Nations" (who
is supported by their minority groups, rioting Negroes, the traitorous
mass-communications media, and the traitors in Washington D.C.) which was
created to destroy the American people. We know all about that many-headed
hydromonster and we know the names of those who created that monster. We
know all their names and I predict that one fine day the American people
will come fully awake and cause that very monster to destroy its creator.
True! The majority of our people are still being brainwashed, deceived,
and deluded by our traitorous press, TV, and radio, and by our traitors
in Washington D.C.; but surely by now enough is known about the U.N. to
stamp out that outfit as a deadly poisonous rattlesnake in our midst.
Ezekiel 13:1 And the Word of the "I AM" came
unto me, saying,
13:2 Son of man, prophesy against the prophets of
Israel that prophesy, and say thou unto them that prophesy out of their
own hearts, Hear ye the Word of the "I AM";
13:3 Thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Woe unto the foolish
prophets (politicians), that follow their own spirit, and have seen nothing!
13:4 O Israel (Britain and U.S.A. - the
Two Witnesses and related nations), thy prophets (politicians) are
like the "foxes in the deserts" (Operation "Desert Fox").
13:5 Ye have not gone up into the gaps, neither made
up the hedge for the "House of Israel" (the Ten "Lost" Tribes of Israel,
which include and are led by America and Britain)
to stand in the battle in The Day of the "I AM" (Armageddon).
13:6 They have seen vanity and lying divination, saying,
The "I AM" saith: and the "I AM" hath not sent them: and they have made
[others] to hope that their words would be confirmed.
13:7 Have ye not seen a vain vision, and have ye not
spoken a lying divination, whereas ye say, The "I AM" saith [it]; albeit
I have not spoken?
13:8 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Because
ye have spoken vanity, and seen lies, therefore, behold, I [am] against
you, saith the Lord "I AM".
13:9 And Mine hand shall be upon the prophets (politicians)
that see vanity, and that divine lies: they shall not be in the assembly
of My people, neither shall they be written in the writing of the "House
of Israel", neither shall they enter into the land of Israel; and ye shall
know that I [am] the Lord "I AM".
13:10 Because, even because they have seduced My people,
saying, Peace; and [there was] NO peace; and one built up a wall (U.N.O.
and NATO), and, lo, others daubed it with untempered [mortar]:
13:11 Say unto them which daub [it] with untempered
[mortar], that it shall fall: there shall be an overflowing shower; and
ye, O great hailstones, shall fall; and a stormy wind (Operation "Desert
Storm") shall rend [it].
13:12 Lo, when the wall is fallen, shall it not be
said unto you, Where [is] the daubing wherewith ye have daubed [it]?
13:13 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; I will
even rend [it] with a stormy wind in my fury; and there shall be an overflowing
shower in Mine anger, and great hailstones in [My] fury to consume [it].
13:14 So will I break down the wall (U.N.) that ye
have daubed with untempered [mortar], and bring it down to the ground,
so that the (Illuminati) foundation thereof shall be discovered, and it
shall fall, and ye shall be consumed in the midst thereof: and ye shall
know that I [am] the "I AM".
13:15 Thus will I accomplish My wrath upon the wall
(U.N.O. and NATO), and upon them that have daubed it with untempered [mortar],
and will say unto you, The wall [is] no [more], neither they that daubed
it;
13:16 [To wit], the prophets (politicians) of Israel
which prophesy concerning Jerusalem, and which see visions of peace for
her, and [there is] no peace, saith the Lord "I AM".
13:17 Likewise, thou son of man, set thy face against
the daughters of thy people, which prophesy out of their own heart; and
prophesy thou against them,
13:18 And say, Thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Woe to
the [women] that sew pillows to all armholes (padded shoulders), and make
kerchiefs (fashion hats) upon the head of every stature to hunt souls!
Will ye hunt the souls of My people, and will ye save the souls alive [that
come] unto you?
13:19 And will ye pollute Me among My people for handfuls
of barley and for pieces of bread, to slay the souls that should not die,
and to save the souls alive that should not live, by your lying to My people
that hear [your] lies?
13:20 Wherefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Behold,
I [am] against your pillows, wherewith ye there hunt the souls to make
[them] fly, and I will tear them from your arms, and will let the souls
go, [even] the souls that ye hunt to make [them] fly.
13:21 Your kerchiefs also will I tear, and deliver
My people out of your hand, and they shall be no more in your hand to be
hunted; and ye shall know that I [am] the "I AM".
13:22 Because with lies ye have made the heart of
the righteous sad, whom I have not made sad; and strengthened the hands
of the wicked, that he should not return from his wicked way, by promising
him life:
13:23 Therefore ye shall see no more vanity, nor divine
divinations: for I will deliver My people out of your hand: and ye shall
know that I [am] the "I AM".
"My only wonder is: "what will it take to awaken and arouse
our people to the full proof?" Perhaps this record (transcript) will do
it. A hundred thousand or a million copies of this record (this transcript)
can do it. I prey to God it will. And I pray that this record (transcript)
will inspire you, all of you, to spread this story to all loyal Americans
in your community. You can do it by playing it (reading it) to study groups
assembled in your homes, at meetings of the American Legion, the VFW, the
DAR, all other civic groups and women's clubs; especially the women's clubs
who have their sons lives at stake. With this record (transcript) I have
provided you with the weapon that will destroy the monster. For the love
of God, of our Country, and of your children, use it! Get a copy of it
into every American home.
Obadiah 1:6 How are [the things] of Esau (Edom
- Idumaeans) searched out! [how] are his hidden things sought up!
1:7 All the men of thy confederacy have brought thee
[even] to the border: the men that were at peace with thee have deceived
thee, [and] prevailed against thee; [they that eat] thy bread have laid
a wound under thee: [there is] none understanding in him.
1:8 Shall I not in that day, saith the "I AM", even
destroy the wise [men] out of Edom (Idumaeans), and understanding out of
the mount of Esau?
Introduction
The document known now as The Protocols of the Learned
Elders of Zion is one of the most important documents ever to come
to light in the world. In fact, it can be described as the blueprint for
the domination of the world by a secret brotherhood.
It is graphic in its contempt for those who will be its
victims, in its profound understanding of the human condition and mind;
and it is equally graphic in detailing the methodology it will use against,
and with the complicity of, the world's population, in such a way as to
go unrecognised by the vast majority of the participants.
The document has achieved fame and infamy in its time.
Essentially, the accusations levelled against it are that
it is a fraud and a forgery. Some say it is a report of a genuine conspiracy
but has been blamed on the Jews in order to hide its true origins, and
that to believe it to be genuinely Judaic shows one to be 'anti-Semitic'.
This kind of black propaganda and emotional reaction arises quite naturally
in the course of events whenever any proof of the ancient conspiracy against
humanity is uncovered.
Despite a general misconception amongst certain politically-aligned
groups and ill-informed individuals - including Jews and non-Jews alike
- that the Protocols are a 'proven fraud', this is not the case, as I will
show.
The cry of 'anti-Semitic' is a standard one and almost
automatic from ill-informed, if often well-intentioned individuals who
have little background knowledge of the vast history and consciousness
of the perpetrators of the 'world revolution'. The majority of people remain
drastically unaware of the conspiracy because a vital aspect of the conspiracy
is to hide itself behind many walls of secrecy, as the following information
will show. Those that would call 'anti-semitism', or say 'there is no conspiracy',
are amongst the greatest victims of the very conspiracy they vehemently
deny.
Someone who has lived in a box without windows for their
entire life might genuinely cry out 'there is no sun, it is a myth, a vicious
lie and anti-boxism'. There remains, however the unalterable fact that
there is a sun and those that point this out to the one in the box, in
an attempt to enlighten and free them from self-imposed ignorance, are
not automatically 'anti-boxists' or feel any sort of hatred towards boxes
or those who live in them at all.
Neither is the reporting of the following document
anti-Semitic.
It is a call to the attention of those who may have been
born into the current age of suppression and propaganda, and have yet to
recoup some of this information which until very recently was openly discussed
on a global scale. However, since the triumphs of Zionism and the further
implementation of mass mind / information control since the Second World
War, with regards to anything remotely Jewish, such information has been
buried through censorship and revision of history-books by the very power
which imposed the conspiracy in the first place. The Protocols make it
quite clear that 'anti-semitism', meaning 'anti-Judaic', is an 'indispensable'
part of the plan for world domination. It will be used for 'the management
of our lesser brethren'. This document makes chilling reading for both
Jews and Gentiles alike when one looks back to the treatment of Jewry during
the Second World War; that a self-appointed elite should be willing to
sacrifice and allow the persecution of their 'lesser brethren', for the
greater aim of world domination, should be a wake-up-call to all of Jewry,
the vast majority of whom constitute what the authors of the Protocols
deem to be 'lesser brethren'.
'Anti-Semitic' is a phrase which means 'against Semites'
but has come to be used solely as meaning 'anti-Jewish'. The irony inherent
in this ill-used phrase is that the Semitic Arabs are actually amongst
the greatest victims in the crime and fraud known as Zionism, in which
Russian Jews, who are racially non-Semitic, in the first half of
the Twentieth Century, fostered and executed a plan (as prophesied by God
through Ezekiel 11:15) to create an officially recognised Jewish homeland
in Palestine. The result of which was the mass displacement and persecution
of the indigenous Arab citizens. This is without doubt 'anti-semitism'
at its worst. And yet to state this plain fact openly today is to invite
the accusation of being 'anti-Semitic'! I will also show in this work that
the ordinary Jewish people, unbeknownst to themselves, have been victims
to the same ancient agenda and are considered by the Elders to be necessary
sacrifices to their cause. As the British; American and other Anglo-Saxon
and Celtic peoples are also descended from Shem/Sem, they are also Semitic
peoples. Therefore anyone who is anti-British or anti-American is anti-Semitic,
in the true definition of the term. But, of course, as explained in the
Protocols, it is the Jews who publish the dictionaries and so they define
the words according to their plan.
The main point pertinent to this work is that the plan
and execution of this agenda was predicted and detailed in the Protocols,
before the Zionist plan began to be put into action openly on the world
stage. More dramatically, however, the agenda outlined in the Protocols
was foreshadowed by over 2,000 years of similar documents, edicts and statements.
The document itself attributes the authorship of these
self-same conspiratorial Protocols to the highest echelons of world Jewry.
It would be madness to ignore the possibility that this document
is genuine and authored by those claimed, simply because certain people
find it offensive. Because if it is genuine, then people absolutely should
find it offensive! It is the greatest single betrayal of both Jews and
Gentiles imaginable. Even if it were not authored by a Jewish elite, the
fact that world Jewry have suffered along the very lines as predicted in
the document, should be enough for every Jew alive to give this document
their full attention.
Both Communism and Zionism can be seen to be the two means
by which the Protocols unfolded during the early Twentieth Century. Whilst
Communism acted to tear down the Russian aristocratic system and replace
it with a tyranny and dictatorship led predominantly by Jews, placing a
vast area of territory and human resources into the hands of the conspirators,
Zionism used the false accusation of the need for the establishment of
the prophesied Jewish homeland to re-home the Eastern Jews who were being
badly persecuted in Russia at the time. In fact, as is shown by government
documents of the time, the accusation of mass anti-Semitism and pogroms
in Russia at the turn of the century (against Jews who are non-Semitic;
being descendants of Japheth, not Shem) is massively exaggerated. This
was essentially a Press-led propaganda tactic employed in the West to further
the aims of Zionist interests and to ease the passage of the masses of
Eastern Jews who emigrated to the West around the late 19th and early 20th
Century. According to Zionist Rabbi Stephen Wise, until 1900, American
Zionism was confined to immigrant Jews (Khazar Ashkenazim decended from
Japheth, not Shem - Genesis 10:3), and the mass of American Jews (mainly
German 'Western' Sephardim) were opposed to it. However, by 1910, a million
Jewish immigrants had arrived in America from Russia and the Zionist lobby
began to represent a significant number of voters. Today, Jews represent
approximately 3% of the American population but occupy more or less 90%
of all the key positions in the US-Administration. Just as in Russia following
the Bolshevik Revolution, the number of Jews numbered around 10% of the
population, whereas the number of Jews in the Bolshevik government was
approximately 90%.
Another interesting 'coincidence', President Franklin
Roosevelt (from a Jewish family) had seventy-two advisors around him when
he led the USA into World War II of whom fifty-two were known Jews. The
Elders of Zion consist of the Sanhedrin, the highest Jewish authority
since Biblical times, officially numbering 71, and the Judaic texts also
reveal the existence of a king, making 72. Whilst in Britain in 1999, the
Labour government admitted that it has 72 official 'advisors' or 'spin-doctors'
(professional-liars). Both Roosevelt and Blair have implemented social
'reforms' called the 'New Deal', which in the USA was also known by those
in the know as the 'Jew Deal'. Do we see here history repeating itself?
As the well tried and tested truism says: those who
refuse to learn the lessons of history are doomed to repeat them.
The British and American governments were manipulated
by the Zionists - against the overwhelming opposition of the Western Jews
and the Palestinian Jews and the majority of Gentiles - to commit themselves
to the creation of an official Jewish homeland in Palestine, which had
nothing to do with British national interest, at an enormous cost during
a time - the First World War - when all manpower and resources were desperately
needed to fight the enemy.
Why this should have occurred is against all logic. However,
the most revealing insight into the modus agendi and the modus operandi
of the world manipulators is acquired through reading the Protocols.
Not only does this document illuminate the reason for
the massive success of international Zionism, but it also provides profound
insight into every single political situation of the last century and sheds
great light on much of what has transpired for the past 2,600 years on
the world stage.
Stunningly, virtually everything planned for and predicted
in the Protocols has provably come to pass. This document is as pertinent
today as it was when it first came to light in 1905.
Recent world political history has been provably controlled
and manipulated by Russian Jews, who have no racial ties or origin
in the land of Palestine, who flocked to the West a century ago. That century
has provably unfolded according to the Protocols, which ascribe themselves
to the elite of world Jewry. The earliest Israelite holy works (The Torah),
right up to the latest (Jewish Talmud and Zohar) have continually promised
that the world would be delivered to the true Israelites and that the Gentile
nations would be consumed; grafted into and ruled by the single Chosen
People who would govern them. That this would be a 'coincidence', and the
Protocols a mere act of deceitful anti-semitism, has to be the grossest
form of ill-logic.
The Protocols of the Learned Elders
of Zion is a document which should be read by all.
No other single document provides us with such a clear understanding of
why the world is gradually moving towards a One World Government, controlled
by an irreproachable 'Hidden Hand'. In fact, in
the Protocols, we are given clear insights as to why so many incomprehensible
political decisions are made in both local, national and international
politics, which seem to continually work against the favour of the masses
and in favour of the vested interests of the banking / industrial cartel
- the global power elite.
We ignore it at our peril.
Historical Background
The Satanic Conspiracy, being executed by the Synagogue
of Satan as Christ calls them (Rev. 2:9*), against YHWH ("I AM" - God);
the true Israelites and The Torah, to replace them, and it, with themselves
and the Jewish Talmud has been in existence for at least 2,600 years as
is confirmed by YHWH ("I AM") Himself in the Books of His Prophets Jeremiah
and Ezekiel.
* Rev. 2:9 "I (Christ) know thy
works, and tribulation, and poverty, (but thou art rich) and [I know] the
blasphemy of them which say they are Jews, and are NOT, but [are]
(Idumeans) the Synagogue of Satan."
It is a FACT and not a theory, that there has been
an on-going CONSPIRACY for at least 2,600 years;
according to YHWH's Own personal Testimony in The Bible; as a result of
which Jerusalem and Solomon's Temple were both destroyed and The "Lost"
Ark of The Covenant was removed from Judah, by Jeremiah and taken to a
safe place and hidden. YHWH did this to allow the CONSPIRACY
to run its course, so that ALL those who took part in the CONSPIRACY,
either actively or passively by not keeping The Covenant and The Torah
and thereby using The Torah to fight against the Conspiracy and thus ALLOWING
it to happen, would demonstrate their continued treason against Him and
The Ark would be kept safe until it was needed again, at the right time,
to destroy the Conspiracy:-
http://i.am/jah/request.htm
Jeremiah around 590 B.C.
11:1 The Word that came to Jeremiah from the "I AM",
saying,
11:2 Hear ye the words of The Covenant, and speak unto
the men of Judah, and to the inhabitants of Jerusalem;
11:3 And say thou unto them, Thus saith the "I AM" God
of Israel; Cursed [be] the man that obeyeth not the words of this Covenant,
11:4 Which I commanded your fathers in the day [that]
I brought them forth out of the land of Egypt, from the iron furnace, saying,
Obey My voice, and do them, according to all which I command you: so shall
ye be My people, and I will be your God:
11:5 That I may perform the Oath which I have sworn unto
your fathers, to give them a land flowing with milk and honey, as [it is]
this day. Then answered I, and said, So be it, O "I AM".
11:6 Then the "I AM" said unto me, Proclaim all these
words in the cities of Judah, and in the streets of Jerusalem, saying,
Hear ye the words of The Covenant, and DO them.
11:7 For I earnestly protested unto your fathers in the
day [that] I brought them up out of the land of Egypt, [even] unto this
day, rising early and protesting, saying, Obey My voice.
11:8 Yet they obeyed not, nor inclined their ear, but
walked every one in the imagination of their evil heart: therefore I will
bring upon them all the words of this Covenant, which I commanded [them]
to do; but they did [them] not.
11:9 And the "I AM" said unto me, A CONSPIRACY
is found among the men of Judah (Jew-dah), and among the inhabitants of
Jerusalem.
11:10 They are turned back to the inequities of their
forefathers, which refused to hear My words; and they went after other
gods to serve them: the House of Israel (Ten Northern Tribes) and the House
of Judah (Two Southern Tribes) have broken My Covenant which I made with
their fathers.
11:11 Therefore thus saith the "I AM", Behold, I will
bring evil upon them, which they shall not be able to escape; and though
they shall cry unto Me, I will not hearken unto them.
11:12 Then shall the cities of Judah and inhabitants
of Jerusalem go, and cry unto the gods unto whom they offer incense: but
they shall not save them at all in the time of their trouble.
11:13 For [according to] the number of thy cities were
thy gods, O Judah; and [according to] the number of the streets of Jerusalem
have ye set up altars to [that] shameful thing, [even] altars to burn incense
unto Baal.
11:14 Therefore pray not thou for this people, neither
lift up a cry or prayer for them: for I will not hear [them] in the time
that they cry unto Me for their trouble.
11:15 What hath My beloved to do in Mine House, [seeing]
she hath wrought lewdness with many, and the holy flesh is passed from
thee? when thou doest evil, then thou rejoicest.
11:16 The "I AM" called thy name, A green olive tree,
fair, [and] of goodly fruit: with the noise of a great tumult He hath kindled
fire upon it, and the branches of it are broken.
11:17 For the "I AM" Lord of hosts, that planted thee,
hath pronounced evil against thee, for the evil of the House of Israel
(Ten "Lost" Tribes - Britain and U.S.A.) and of the House of Judah (The
Two Tribes that are Jewish), which they have done against themselves to
provoke Me to anger in offering incense unto Baal.
11:18 And the "I AM" hath given me knowledge [of it],
and I know [it]: then thou showedst me their doings.
11:19 But I [was] like a lamb [or] an ox [that] is brought
to the slaughter; and I knew not that they had devised devices against
me, [saying], Let us destroy the tree with the fruit thereof, and let us
cut him off from the land of the living, that his name may be no more remembered.
Further proof provided by YHWH via His Prophet Ezekiel
that the Jewish Conspiracy against Him is an historical FACT and not a
theory.
Ezekiel around 585 B.C.
22:17 And the Word of the "I AM" (YHWH) came unto me,
saying,
22:18 Son of man, the "House of Israel" (the Ten "lost"
Tribes - Britain and USA) is to Me become dross: all they [are] brass,
and tin, and iron, and lead, in the midst of the furnace; they are [even]
the dross of silver.
22:19 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Because ye
are all become dross, behold, therefore I will gather you into the midst
of Jerusalem.
22:20 [As] they gather silver, and brass, and iron, and
lead, and tin, into the midst of the furnace, to blow the fire upon it,
to melt [it]; so will I gather [you] in Mine anger and in My fury, and
I will leave [you there], and melt you (Malachi 4**).
22:21 Yea, I will gather you, and blow upon you in the
fire of My wrath, and ye shall be melted in the midst thereof.
22:22 As silver is melted in the midst of the furnace,
so shall ye be melted in the midst thereof; and ye shall know that I the
"I AM" have poured out My fury upon you.
22:23 And the Word of the "I AM" came unto me, saying,
22:24 Son of man, say unto her, Thou [art] the land that
is not cleansed, nor rained upon in the day of indignation.
22:25 [There is] a CONSPIRACY of her prophets
in the midst thereof, like a roaring lion ravening the prey; they have
devoured souls; they have taken the treasure and precious things; they
have made her many widows in the midst thereof.
22:26 Her priests have violated My Law, and have profaned
Mine Holy things: they have put no difference between the Holy and profane,
neither have they showed [difference] between the unclean and the clean,
and have hid their eyes from My Sabbaths, and I am profaned among them.
22:27 Her princes in the midst thereof [are] like wolves
ravening the prey, to shed blood, [and] to destroy souls, to get dishonest
gain.
22:28 And her prophets have daubed them with untempered
[mortar] (the UNO and NATO - see ch.13*), seeing vanity, and divining lies
unto them, saying, Thus saith the Lord "I AM", when the "I AM" hath not
spoken.
22:29 The people of the land have used oppression, and
exercised robbery, and have vexed the poor and needy: yea, they have oppressed
the stranger wrongfully.
22:30 And I sought for a man among them, that should
make up the hedge (defences), and stand in the gap before Me for the land,
that I should not destroy it: but I found none.
22:31 Therefore have I poured out Mine indignation upon
them; I have consumed them with the fire of My wrath: their own way have
I recompensed upon their heads, saith the Lord "I AM".
23:1 The Word of the "I AM" came again unto me, saying,
23:2 Son of man, there were two women (Israel and Judah),
the daughters of one mother (Israel - 12 Tribes):
23:3 And they committed whoredoms in Egypt; they committed
whoredoms in their youth: there were their breasts pressed, and there they
bruised the teats of their virginity.
23:4 And the names of them [were] Israel the elder, and
Judah her sister: and they were Mine, and they bare sons and daughters.
Thus [were] their names; Samaria (Israel - 10 Tribes) [is] Aholah, and
Jerusalem (Judah - 2 Tribes) Aholibah.
* Ezekiel 13:-
13:1 And the Word of the "I AM" came unto me, saying,
13:2 Son of man, prophesy against the prophets (politicians)
of Israel that prophesy, and say thou unto them that prophesy out of their
own hearts, Hear ye the Word of the "I AM";
13:3 Thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Woe unto the foolish
prophets, that follow their own spirit, and have seen nothing!
13:4 O Israel, thy prophets are like the foxes in the
deserts ("Desert Fox").
13:5 Ye have not gone up into the gaps, neither made
up the hedge (defences) for the "House of Israel" (Britain and USA) to
stand in the battle (of Armageddon) in The Day of the "I AM".
13:6 They have seen vanity and lying divination, saying,
The "I AM" saith: and the "I AM" hath not sent them: and they have made
[others] to hope that their words would be confirmed.
13:7 Have ye not seen a vain vision, and have ye not
spoken a lying divination, whereas ye say, The "I AM" saith [it]; albeit
I have not spoken?
13:8 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; Because ye
have spoken vanity, and seen lies, therefore, behold, I [am] against you,
saith the Lord "I AM".
13:9 And Mine hand shall be upon the prophets that see
vanity, and that divine lies: they shall not be in the assembly of My people,
neither shall they be written in the writing of the "House of Israel",
neither shall they enter into the land of Israel; and ye shall know that
I [am] the Lord "I AM".
13:10 Because, even because they have seduced My people,
saying, Peace; and [there was] NO peace; and one built up a wall (U.N.),
and, lo, others daubed it with untempered [mortar]:
13:11 Say unto them which daub [it] with untempered [mortar],
that it shall fall: there shall be an overflowing shower; and ye, O great
hailstones, shall fall; and a stormy wind ("Desert
Storm") shall rend [it].
13:12 Lo, when the wall is fallen, shall it not be said
unto you, Where [is] the daubing wherewith ye have daubed [it]?
13:13 Therefore thus saith the Lord "I AM"; I will even
rend [it] with a stormy wind in my fury; and there shall be an overflowing
shower in Mine anger, and great hailstones in [My] fury to consume [it].
13:14 So will I break down the wall (U.N.) that ye have
daubed with untempered [mortar], and bring it down to the ground, so that
the (Elders of Zion / Illuminati / NWO) foundation
thereof shall be discovered, and it shall fall, and ye shall be consumed
in the midst thereof: and ye shall know that I [am] the "I AM".
13:15 Thus will I accomplish My wrath upon the wall (U.N.),
and upon them that have daubed it with untempered [mortar], and will say
unto you, The wall [is] no [more], neither they that daubed it;
13:16 [To wit], the prophets of Israel which prophesy
concerning Jerusalem, and which see visions of peace for her, and [there
is] no peace, saith the Lord "I AM".
** Malachi 4:-
4:1 For, behold, the Day cometh, that shall burn like
an oven; and all the proud, yea, and all that do wickedly, shall be stubble:
and the day that cometh shall burn them up, saith the "I AM" Lord of hosts,
that it shall leave of them neither root nor branch (nothing).
4:2 But unto you that fear My name shall the Sun of Righteousness
arise with healing in his wings; and ye shall go forth, and grow up as
calves of the stall (in perfect safety).
4:3 And ye shall tread down the wicked; for they shall
be ashes under the soles of your feet in The Day that I shall do [this],
saith the "I AM" Lord of hosts.
4:4 Remember ye and return to The Law of Moses My servant,
which I commanded unto him in Horeb for all Israel, [with] the Statutes
and Judgments.
4:5 Behold, I will send you Elijah the Prophet before
the coming of the great and dreadful Day of the "I AM" (Sura 43:61):
4:6 And he shall turn the heart of the fathers to the
children, and the heart of the children to their fathers, lest I come and
smite the earth with a curse (as in verse 1).
YHWH has told the world on the last page of the Old Covenant
/ Testament in Malachi 4 what every one of you MUST do, if you want to
survive The Fire, which was re-confirmed by Christ in the Revelation to
John, in Revelation/Apocalypse 14:3 and 15:3.
Revelation:-
14:3 And they sung as it were a "New Song" (Isaiah
42:10) before the Throne, and before the four beasts, and the elders: and
no man could learn that "Song" EXCEPT the hundred [and] forty [and]
four thousand, which were redeemed from the Earth.
15:3 And they sing the "Song of Moses" (The Torah - Old
Covenant - Deut. 31) the servant of God, AND the "Song of the Lamb"
(New Covenant), saying, Great and marvellous [are] Thy works, Lord God
Almighty; just and TRUE [are] Thy Ways, Thou King of the holy people.
In both places, you have been told that you MUST
get rid of all man-made laws and return to keeping ONLY God's Laws
and The Covenants - the Old and the New Covenants which are harmonised
and referred to as the "New Song" by Christ in Revelation 14:3 and
15:3 above and by God in Isaiah 42:10.
Isaiah:-
42:10 Sing unto the "I AM" the "New Song" (Rev.
14:3; 15:3), [and] His praise from the "end of the earth", ye that go down
to the sea, and all that is therein; the isles, and the inhabitants thereof.
42:11 Let the "wilderness" and the cities thereof lift
up [their voice], the villages [that] Darkness doth inhabit: let the inhabitants
of the Rock sing, let them shout from the top of the mountain.
42:12 Let them give glory unto the "I AM", and declare
His praise in the islands.
42:13 The "I AM" shall go forth as a mighty man, He shall
stir up jealousy like a man of WAR: He shall cry, yea, roar; He shall PREVAIL
against His enemies.
I have placed the "New Song" that every one of
you who wants to survive and live in God's Kingdom MUST learn and
live by, according to Christ, on my website:- http://i.am/jah/nsong.htm
please retrieve; download and use it, now.
See the ONLY Survival Plan: "The Way home or face
The Fire", on my website at:- http://i.am/jah/wayad.htm
"Seek ye first the Kingdom of God and His Righteousness
and then all things will be added unto you", including His personal PROTECTION
and supply of everything you will need. There is only ONE way to defeat
the Synagogue of Satan QUICKLY and that is by doing what God has told you
in Malachi 4 and getting the whole world to listen and encourage them to
do the same, thereby automatically dissolving all human laws including
the Talmud and thus taking away their power from the UN / NWO / Elders
of Zion / 300 Club.
http://i.am/jah/request.htm
Since c. 600 BC, there has been a conspiracy by a few
to conquer and destroy the many. The few are identified in the Bible as
the Synagogue of Satan who falsely claim to be from the tribes of Judah
and Benjamin and who ghettoised themselves at Jerusalem under the Talmud.
This would be the origin of the people we call 'the Jews'. A small sect
of people ruled with an iron hand of tyranny and fear by a minority of
apostate / counterfeit Levitical priests who claimed
(falsely) to speak for Yahweh, whose house on Earth was the Temple in Jerusalem
and to be His Chosen people, when they are not, but are, in reality, His
enemies, whom He hates (Malachi 1:1 - 2:11). Using this deception they
have claimed that the Scriptures about Israel refer to them and that they
should destroy anyone who will not accept their evil Talmud and lordship;
as they did to Jesus.
If thou shalt indeed...do all that I speak, then I
will be an enemy unto thine enemies...and will destroy all the people to
whom thou shalt come.
And one of the main observances demanded of God, for which
His reward will be utter defeat of the enemy, was written in Deuteronomy
12:2:
Ye shall utterly destroy all the places, wherein the
nations which ye shall possess served other gods.
This was reconfirmed by Christ, as is recorded in Matthew
6 where Jesus commanded his followers NOT to pray in
churches.
The above plan, clearly defined, to deliver the world
unto the Synagogue of Satan through the extermination and enslavement of
the Gentile nations is to be carried out according to Satan's wishes and
it is Satan who dictated the Protocols to the Elders of Zion. No man, or
men, could have thought up the Protocols, only Satan himself could have
done so and then telepathically dictated them to his synagogue. The Protocols
are the opposite of The Covenant and demonstrate precisely why YHWH wrote
The
Covenant exactly as He did, forbidding any other legislation or any
alteration of The Covenant, to prevent those who kept it from being deceived
by counterfeit Satanically inspired man-made legislation like the Jewish/Babylonian
Talmud;
Hadith and all human government legislation;
etc.
According to Torah lore, every time the true Israelites
are persecuted or come across any kind of misfortune, this is defined as
the literal manifestation of Yahweh's disfavour. It is a sign that the
Israelite people have strayed further from God's favour and are being punished.
This means that the Israelite people must strive to be observant of The
Law to find favour in God's eyes which will culminate in leading them back
to the 'Promised Land'.
This is a highly significant point in relation to the
Protocols which state that anti-Semitism is a necessary part of the fulfilment
of the ancient agenda, in which many Jews will be sacrificed to the cause,
so that the Synagogue of Satan can steal the 'Promised Land' again from
its rightful true Israelite owners.
The most recent example of how so-called anti-Semitism
has been used by the Elders to massively advance their agenda towards world
control from the seat of kingship in Jerusalem, is the Second World War,
during which millions of Jews were persecuted, resulting in an almost global
drive to facilitate the fulfilment of the Judaic 'return' to Palestine
and the creation of the Jewish state in Israel (Ezekiel 11:15 Son of man,
thy brethren, [even] thy brethren, the men of thy kindred, and all the
House of Israel wholly, [are] they unto whom the inhabitants of Jerusalem
[Zionists] have said, Get you far from the "I AM": unto us is this land
given in possession - Idumean zionists - 22/4/1948).
The later Levitical writings
of the early centuries AD, by the Rabbinical caste, takes the concept of
'Gentiles' one step further, to define them merely as 'animals', or 'cattle'
- goyim. This we find in the writings known as the Talmud.
'The Talmud consists of 63 books of legal (?), ethical
(?) and historical writings of the ancient rabbis. It was edited five centuries
after the birth of Jesus. It is a compendium of law and lore. It is the
legal code which forms the basis of Jewish religious law and it is the
textbook used in the training of rabbis.'
(Rabbi Morris N Kertzer - article 'What is a Jew',
from Look magazine 1952)
'Is the literature that Jesus was familiar with in
his early years yet in existence in the world? Is it possible for us to
get at it?...To such enquiries the learned class of Jewish rabbis answer
by holding up the Talmud...What is the Talmud? The Talmud, then, is the
written form of that which, in the time of Jesus was called the traditions
of the elders and to which he makes frequent allusions.'
(Michael Rodkinson [with Rabbi Isaac M Wise] -
'History of the Talmud' my emphasis)
And what opinion did Jesus have of the Learned Elders
of Zion; the Sanhedrin and their traditions; that caused them to
fear him and have him crucified?:-
Matthew 15:1 Then came to Jesus lawyers and
politicians [from the Idumean Sanhedrin], which were of Jerusalem, saying,
15:2 Why do thy disciples transgress the Tradition
of the Elders? for they wash not their hands when they eat bread.
15:3 But he answered and said unto them, Why do ye
also transgress the COMMANDment of God by your Tradition?
15:4 For God Commanded, saying, Honour thy father
and mother: and, He that curseth father or mother, let him die the death.
15:5 But ye say, Whosoever shall say to [his] father
or [his] mother, [It is] a gift, by whatsoever thou mightest be profited
by me;
15:6 And honour not his father or his mother, [he
shall be free]. Thus have ye made the Commandment of God of none effect
by your Tradition (Talmud).
15:7 [Ye] hypocrites, well did Isaiah prophesy of
you, saying,
15:8 This people draweth nigh unto me with their mouth,
and honoureth me with [their] lips; but their heart is FAR from me.
15:9 But in vain they do worship Me, teaching [for]
doctrines the commandments of men (man-made laws).
They answered (the Jews) and said unto him, Abraham
is our father. Jesus saith unto them, If ye were Abraham's
children, ye would do the works of Abraham...If God were your Father,
ye would love me...Ye are of [your] father the devil, and the lusts
of your father ye will do. He was a murderer from the beginning, and abode
not in the truth, because there is no truth in him. When he speaketh a
lie, he speaketh of his own: for he is a liar, and the father of it. And
because I tell [you] the truth, ye believe me not. Which of you convinceth
me of sin? And if I say the truth, why do ye not believe me? He that is
of God heareth God's words: ye therefore hear [them] not, because ye are
not of God.
(John 8:39-47 my emphasis)
Matthew 23:1 Then spoke Jesus to the multitude,
and to his disciples,
23:2 Saying, The lawyers and the politicians sit in
Moses' Law seat:
23:3 All therefore whatsoever they bid you observe
of God's Law (The Torah), [that] observe and do; but do not ye after their
example: for they say, and do not (and make up their own laws against God's
Orders - Deut. 4:2).
23:4 For they bind heavy burdens (the Talmud) and
grievous to be borne, and lay [them] on men's shoulders; but they [themselves]
will not lift one of their fingers to remove them.
23:5 But all their works they do for to be seen by
men: they make broad their phylacteries (small leather box containing Old
Covenant - Testament texts, worn to remind them to keep The Law [God's
Law]), and enlarge the borders of their garments,
Excerpts taken from "The King of kings' Bible",
available from:-
http://i.am/jah/kofkad.htm
The Learned Elders of Zion, the rabbinical caste, are
acknowledged to exist. It is plain that the reported sentiment of Jesus
is that they were worshippers of a 'god' other than the one of love and
forgiveness which he preached. In fact he defines the Judaic god to be
the 'father of lies', in other words - Satan.
This is quite clear from the following passages quoted
from the Talmud and other Rabbinical talmudic writings, which also show
the continuing agenda of world domination through the destruction and manipulation
of the Gentile nations, which is still carried forth by the elders and
their followers over 600 years after it was first accepted by them as their
so-called official Yahwist manifesto:
'Just the Jews are humans, the non-Jews are not humans,
but cattle.' (Kerithuth 6b, page 78, Jebhammoth 61). 'The non-Jews have
been created to serve the Jews as slaves.' (Midrasch Talpioth 225). 'As
you replace lost cows and donkeys, so you shall replace non-Jews.' (Lore
Dea 377,1).'Sexual intercourse with non-Jews is like sexual intercourse
with animals.' (Kethuboth 3b). 'The birth rate of non-Jews has to be suppressed
massively.' (Zohar 11, 4b). 'It is permitted to deceive a Goi.' (Babha
Kama 113b), 'Do not have any pity for them, for it is said (Deuter. Vii,2):
Show no mercy unto them. Therefore, if you see an Akum (non-Jew) in difficulty
or drowning, do not go to his help.' (Hilkoth Akum X,1). 'Even the best
of the Goyim should be killed.' (Abhodah Zarah 26b, Tosephoth). 'When a
Jew has a gentile in his clutches, another Jew may go to the same gentile,
lend him money and in his turn deceive him, so that the gentile shall be
ruined. For the property of the gentile (according to our law) belongs
to no one, and the first Jew that passes has the full right to seize it.'
(Schulchan Aruk, Law 24)
Again, there are many more such instances in the Talmud
where the Gentile - especially the Christian - is labelled as subhuman
and as merely there to be exploited or exterminated. The ultimate goal
is again clearly defined in the Talmud as the inheritance of the Gentile
nations, supposedly under Yahweh, but really under Satan.
This has fundamental implications for our times, as the
Protocols will clearly show. The Protocols are merely another document
in a long history of documents to outline the Satanic counterfeit of the
plan first manifested in The Torah Book of Deuteronomy, which was hijacked
by the Jews and corrupted by them in their Talmud. And, 'The Talmud
is to this day the circulating heart's blood of the Jewish religion. Whatever
laws, customs or ceremonies we observe - whether we are orthodox, conservative,
reform or merely spasmodic sentimentalists - we follow the Talmud. It is
our common Law.' (Herman Wouk - 'The Talmud').
There is no room here to trace the journey of the Talmudic
manifesto through history to the present day, for that I refer the reader
to the encyclopaedic masterwork, 'The Controversy of Zion' by Douglas Reed.
However, suffice it to say that this same destructive principle, intimately
associated with Jewry and more specifically the hereditary and self-appointed
elect of Zion, is readily traceable throughout world history to the present
day, although today's history-books are very reluctant to document it,
for reasons which will be obvious by reading the Protocols.
The purpose of this brief history is to show that the
Protocols are not a unique work, unprecedented in history, but are the
product of an ancient heritage which has remained unbroken and unaltered
since at least the middle of the first millennium BC.
In 1492, Chemor, Chief Rabbi
of Spain received the following reply from the Grand Sanhedrin (Elders
of Zion) to his plea for advice on how to deal with their threatened expulsion
under Spanish Law; it illustrates well how the same ancient agenda was
still being adhered to by the elect at this time:
'Beloved brethren in Moses (another lie), we have received
your letter in which you tell us of the anxieties and misfortunes which
you are enduring. We are pierced by as great a pain to hear it as yourselves.
The advice of the Grand Satraps and the Rabbis
is the following:
1. As for what you say that the king of Spain obliges
you to become Christians: do it, since you cannot do otherwise.
2. As for what you say about the command to despoil
you of your property: make your sons merchants that they may despoil, little
by little, the Christians of theirs.
3. As for what you say about making attempts on your
lives: make your sons doctors and apothecaries (pharmacists/chemists),
that they may take away Christian's lives.
4. As for what you say of their destroying your synagogues:
make your sons canons and clerics in order that they may destroy their
churches.
5. As for the other vexations you complain of: arrange
that your sons become advocates and lawyers, and see that they always mix
in affairs of State, that by putting Christians under your yoke you
may dominate the world and be avenged on them.
6. Do not swerve from this order that we give you,
because you will find by experience that, humiliated as you are, you will
reach the actuality of power.
(Signed) Prince of the Jews of Constantinople'
(Julio-Inigrez de Medrano - 'La Silva Curiosa'
1608 my emphasis)
The above could almost be read as a prophecy of what was
to come in Europe. Many Jews did exactly as above and became intimate with
the established aristocratic order; becoming doctors, advisors, private
occultists and most significantly bankers to the aristocracy and royal
houses. The most famous example of this being the House of Rothschild.
This then gives us a very clear idea of the methods which the Elders were
prepared to employ to fulfil their ancient manifesto. Again, there is clearly
a direct correlation between the beliefs and methods of the 14th century
Elders and those who originated the plan in c. 600 BC.
More than a prophecy, however, was the above 'advice'
to the Spanish Jews. For, according to Talmudic Law, the words of the rabbis
are deemed to be the words of God. In fact, the Talmud goes even further
by declaring (with blasphemous lies) that the rabbis
are actually advisors to Yahweh when He is uncertain (which He never is
and He has condemned their Talmud in Holy Scripture):
'Jehovah himself in heaven studies the Talmud, standing;
as he has such respect for that book.' (Tr. Mechilla) 'The teachings of
the Talmud stand above all other laws. They are more important than the
Laws of Moses (The Torah).' (Miszna, Sanhedryn XI, 3). How did the
Talmud get to be in heaven when it was written by evil men, in direct opposition
to God's Commandment in Deuteronomy 4:2???
Thus the Elders have placed themselves above even God
(like their master Lucifer/Satan tried to do - Isa. 14:12*). Thus these
so-called 'men of God' have actually defined themselves as 'God-men'. Therefore,
such an edict from the Grand Sanhedrin will have literally been heeded
as 'divine' instruction and therefore Law.
* Isaiah:-
14:12 How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer,
son of the Morning (Star)! [How] art thou cut down to the earth, which
didst weaken the nations!
14:13 For thou hast said in thine heart, I will ascend
into heaven, I will exalt my throne above the stars of God: I will sit
also upon the mount of the congregation, in the sides of the North:
14:14 I will ascend above the heights of the clouds;
I will be like (take the Place of) The Most High.
It is unsurprising then, given the legal instruction to
convert to Christianity in order to 'dominate the world and be avenged',
that thousands did just that, often with disastrous consequences for the
Gentile host population.
One famous Jewish convert to Christianity was Torquemada,
the Inquisition's first Grand Inquisitor who had entered the Dominican
order (even before the edict of 1492) and eventually rose to be the most
powerful and most feared man in Spain, causing
the torture and deaths of thousands of people. Critics of the Protocols
often cite the horrors of the Inquisition as an example of 'proof' that
the Church has a greater historical basis for being the head of the conspiracy,
as do they often cite the example of the Jesuit order as being at the inner
core rather than the Judaic Elders. However, given the Talmudic/rabbinical
edicts to infiltrate and destroy, as well as the repeated stated aims of
the Illuminati and Protocols, it is not inconceivable that Jews living
in accordance with their religion have played a significant part in these
two organisations from the beginning:
The newly founded Society of Jesus...Saint Ignatius.
His secretary Polanco, the only person present at his deathbed, was of
Jewish descent. So was Lainez, one of his first and greatest converts,
was of Jewish descent...In a short time, as the young Jesuit organization
became a power for Catholic reform and propaganda, Jews were attracted
to it, as they are always attracted to centers of influence, in such numbers
that it was found difficult to keep out those who wished to destroy the
order and the Church, under pretext of working for them. Thus a nephew
of the great and Catholic Jew Polanco followed him into the society, and
caused such difficulties and dissensions that for years he nearly drove
his superiors to despair.
(Philip II, William Thomas Walsh, p. 95)
It is entirely in accordance with Talmudic law for Jews
to deceive Christians and even believe their tenets, whilst at the same
time working to destroy them from within. We will never know the full extent
to which this policy has been employed by the 'Hidden
Hand'.
Furthermore, there have even been several Jewish popes:
Anacletus II (1130-1138), Innocent II (1130-1143), Calixtus
III (1168-1178), Clement VIII (1424-1420), Alexander VI (1492-1503), and
even Pius XI (1922-1939). In addition, Gregory VI (1045-1046) and others
may have been Jews or part-Jews. Anacletus II, Calixtus III, and Clement
VIII are generally classified as antipopes.
(Dietrich Eckhart, Bolshevism From Moses to Lenin,
translation and footnotes by William L Pierce)
Pope Alexander VI is a very good example of a corrupt
pope. He was one of the infamous Borgias, father of Lucrezia (with whom
he was accused of having an incestuous affair), and was appointed by his
uncle. His reign as pope included the period just after the expulsion from
Spain of 160,000 Jews who refused to convert to Christianity, the latter
years of Torquemada's brutal campaign, and the vast majority of Columbus's
invasion of the West Indies.
In the 13th Century, another Jewish work began to gain
recognition. The Zohar is a 5 volume work which examines the Judaic Torah
and the Jewish mythologies from a mystical stance, and which is the heart
of the Jewish magical system known as the Kabbalah. The Kabbalah is deemed
to be an ancient oral tradition handed down from mouth to ear (the root
being QBL - 'from mouth to ear') since Levitical times, and it's origin
is 'attributed' to Moses.
From 1400 onward the sanctity of the Zohar became more
widely acknowledged in kabbalistic circles, and the criticisms of it which
was heard here and there in the 14th century (e.g., in Joseph ibn Waqar
who wrote: "the Zohar contains many errors of which one must be wary, to
avoid being misled by them") died down. At this time the spread and influence
of the Zohar were confined mainly to Spain and Italy, and it was very slow
to reach the Ashkenazi lands and the East. The great elevation of the Zohar
to a position of sanctity and supreme authority came during and after the
period of the expulsion from Spain, and it reached its peak in the 16th
and 17th centuries.
(Encyclopaedia Judaica, 1997)
The fact that this work was accepted; amongst the Spanish
and Italians at the time of the letter from the Grand Sanhedrin to the
Chief Rabbi of Spain; is yet further proof of the existence of the ancient
conspiracy and its acceptance amongst the Jewish hierarchy. It would hardly
be reasonable to suppose that the Zohar would not be known to the elders,
as rabbinical teaching has it that it originated from the earliest elders.
The Zohar repeats the ancient agenda in its own way. It states that the
Messiah will declare war on the whole world and all the kings will retaliate.
But:
'...the Holy One, blessed be He, will display His force
and exterminate them from the world.'
Which is confirmed by Christ in Luke 19:27 and Revelation
17:14; 21:27 (29:27 in The King of kings' Bible).
Following which:
'Happy will be the lot of Israel, whom the Holy One,
blessed be He, has chosen from amongst the goyim of whom the Scriptures
say: "Their work is but vanity, it is an illusion at which we must laugh;
they will all perish when God visits them in His wrath." At the moment
when the Holy One, blessed be He, will exterminate all the goyim of the
world, Israel alone will subsist, even as it is written: "The Lord alone
will appear great on that day."'
(Zohar, section Schemoth, folio 7 and 9b; section
Beschalah, folio 58b)
Confirmed by Christ in Revelation chapters 5 and 7.
How similar this sentiment appears to the Deuteronomic
assertion that: 'the Lord thy God hath chosen thee to be a special people
unto Himself, above all people that are on the face of the Earth...Thou
shalt be blessed above all people...And thou shalt consume all the people
which the Lord thy God shall deliver thee; thine eyes shall have no pity
upon them...And He shall deliver their kings into thine hand, and thou
shalt destroy their name from under heaven; there shall no man be able
to stand before thee, until thou have destroyed them...' Showing an unbroken
tradition held as sacred by the Elders of Zion, passed down 'from mouth
to ear' for over 2,000 years! Unfortunately for them, they are not
true Israel and they will be destoyed too (Zechariah 12:10-11).
In the 18th century we find yet another manifestation
of the ancient conspiracy, this time in the works of Adam Weishaupt,
who founded in Bavaria his secret order of the Illuminati
in 1776. Many regard Weishaupt's philosophy and work to be the true single
origin of the Protocols. However, I have to disagree strongly. Weishaupt's
papers and agenda were discovered in July 1785 when an Illuminati emissary
named Lanze was struck down by lightning whilst carrying them to Silesia
(a true 'Act of God'). The document, called The Original Writings of the
Order of the Illuminati, created such a case against them that the order
was legally suppressed. However, it never really ceased to exist and exists
to this day within secret orders such as Freemasonry.
The stated aims of the Illuminati were to destroy the
existing order of society and replace it with a New World Order:
'...he proposed as the end of Illuminism the abolition
of property, social authority, of nationality, and the return of the human
race to the happy state in which it formed only a single family without
artificial needs, without useless sciences, every father being a priest
and magistrate...'
(Henry Martin - Histoire de France)
The above plan will become very familiar to the reader
upon reading the Protocols. Indeed this socialist stance was the very heart
of the bloody conflict known as the French Revolution of 1789, which has
been shown to have been orchestrated by Illuminist Freemasons. There is
no documented proof of that time that the Illuminati were Judaic besides
circumstantial evidence. Unless, however, it is agreed that the Protocols
are genuine, then we do have that proof, as they state clearly that the
same secret society which wrote the Protocols were also the 'hidden hand'
behind the French Revolution. If the Protocols are genuinely sourced in
the work of the Elders of Zion, then we have no reason to doubt this assertion.
Therefore we have every reason to believe that Weishaupt and the Illuminati
were an order dedicated to the fulfilment of the ancient conspiracy, and
that the 'hidden hand' behind Weishaupt was, in fact, the Elders of Zion.
It is always useful to look at who benefits from any upheaval
on the world stage. The result of the French Revolution was that the Jews
benefited enormously and in effect filled the vacuum of power created by
the destruction of the former aristocracy. In 1806, Napoleon remarked:
'By what miracle did whole provinces of France become
heavily mortgaged to the Jews, when there are only sixty thousand of them
in this country?'
(Letter quoted in MSS of Napoleon', 1811)
In the same vein, the only bodies to have substantially
benefitted from both World Wars were the Zionists, who gained an entire
homeland, and the Communists who inherited a sizeable share of Eastern
Europe. Whilst the West suffered enormously in terms of indebtedness to
the multinationals and banks, which were also largely in the hands of Jewish
financiers. It is an obscene delusion that is held amongst the mind-controlled
masses of the Western world, who believe that the 'Allies', the 'good guys',
won the wars. The fact remains that the hidden Jewish power elite, who
never get their hands dirty or have to fight in any form of conflict, have
won virtually every war, large or small, of the 20th Century.
'Israel won the war [WW I]; we made it; we thrived
on it; we profited from it. It was our supreme revenge on Christianity.'
(The Jewish Ambassador from Austria to London, Count
Mensdorf, 1918).
'If you will look back at every war in Europe during
the nineteenth century, you will see that they always ended with the establishment
of a 'balance of power.' With every reshuffling there was a balance of
power in a new grouping around the House of Rothschild in England, France,
or Austria. They grouped nations so that if any king got out of line, a
war would break out and the war would be decided by which way the financing
went. Researching the debt positions of the warring nations will usually
indicate who was to be punished.'
(Economist Stuart Crane)
'He who sheds the blood of the Goyim, is offering a
sacrifice to God.'
(Talmud - Jalqut Simeoni)
Weishaupt's vision of a New World Order of reason,
including the destruction of Christianity and the abolition of property,
was the forerunner of not only the French Revolution, but also the
Russian Revolution, which was provably orchestrated by Jews to the
tune of the conspiracy as outlined in the Protocols.
Again, confirmed by the Protocols in retrospect, is the
manner in which the Illuminati (the Elders) would execute their plans on
the world stage. They would use Freemasonry, as the host, into which their
agents would insert themselves and manipulate Europe's aristocracy, royalty,
politicians and thinkers from within an already established ancient order,
which up until that time had been a Gentile organisation dedicated to carrying
forth the secrets of the ancients; the very secrets and wisdom which the
Judeo-Christian fraternities had sought to eradicate from Gentile knowledge.
'For in concealment lies a great part of our strength.
For this reason we must always cover ourselves with the name of another
society. The lodges that are under Freemasonry are in the meantime the
most suitable cloak for our purpose...As in the spiritual Orders of the
Roman Church, religion was, alas! only a pretence*, so must our
Order also in a nobler way try to conceal itself behind a learned society
or something of the kind...'
(Weishaupt)
* 2 Corinthians 11:13-15
11:13 For such [are] false apostles, deceitful
workers,
transforming themselves into the apostles of Christ.
11:14 And no marvel; for Satan himself is transformed
into an angel of light.
11:15 Therefore [it is] no great thing if his ministers
also be transformed as the ministers of righteousness; whose end shall
be according to their works.
The implication of the above quote is that Roman Catholicism
- the very origin and executor of Christianity*
- was merely a front for a hidden agenda operated from behind the scenes
by a 'hidden hand'. A most revealing statement when the above information
on how Jews were ordered to convert to Christianity in order to 'dominate
the world and be avenged'. This is an awesome concept to accept for
most Christians, as it implies that Christianity was essentially a stepping-stone
to the greater Judification of the world, and that its usefulness to the
cause has been deemed fulfilled by the secret ancient order which nurtured
it.
* http://i.am/jah/darth.htm
Weishaupt entered Freemasonry in 1777, a year after the
official formation of the Illuminati. Despite profoundly despising Freemasonry
and Catholicism, Weishaupt (who was a Catholic
Priest) used both systems for his purposes. He constructed the Order on
the lines of the Jesuit Order and inserted the Illuminati Order into the
Freemasonic Order. He devised a system of the pyramidal structure of a
honeycomb, wherein each operative of the agenda would operate within his
own information 'cell'; so, should he be discovered, he would be unable
to reveal the secrets of anyone else operating in their own cell. These
compartmentalised agents would apparently operate in isolation, whilst
others higher in the chain of hierarchy would be able to observe and guide
those below them by having an overall picture of the unfolding agenda.
The very few have managed to control the very many with this simple power
structure for aeons. This way, Weishaupt infiltrated Freemasonry and Illuminism
took over the order from within. He soon began remoulding the structure
of Freemasonry and inventing degrees of initiation which were, according
to him, really only smokescreens and tools for the agenda. Through becoming
the architect of modern Freemasonry, Weishaupt was able to recruit the
keenest minds of his time into Illuminati level Freemasonry, whilst using
the existing Freemasonic structure as a smokescreen, through which he could
influence the spectrum of European aristocracy; royalty and all the levels
of European social hierarchy over which Freemasonry dominated as the common
element. Through the control of schools and centres of higher learning,
new initiates of the highest intellect and moral predisposition were drawn
to work for the agenda, either knowingly or unknowingly.
I draw the readers' attention to the orders given to the
Chief Rabbi in Spain, to have the Jewish sons
masquerade as their enemy in order to bring about their enemy's downfall.
Some researchers have concluded that Weishaupt was himself a Jew. However,
what is known as fact is that he was himself surrounded by Jews in his
associations. Jewish writer, Bernard Lazare stated definitely that 'there
were Jews, Cabalistic Jews, around Weishaupt.' The similarity between Weishaupt's
agenda and that of the Elders is striking. Although not overtly Judaic,
the Weishaupt papers showed a methodology which would achieve the same
ends as the ancient conspiracy:
a World Order run by
a self-appointed elite. One clue to the origin of the ideas of Weishaupt
came in the following statement made in his papers: '...the head of every
family will be what Abraham was, the patriarch, the priest, and the unfettered
lord of his family, and Reason will be the only code of Man.' Which has
striking similarities to the words of Moses Mendelssohn, the spiritual
leader of German Jewry, and one of the men queried to be one of the 'Jews...around
Weishaupt':
'Our Rabbis unanimously teach that the written and
oral laws which form conjointly our revealed religion are obligatory to
our nation only...We believe that all other nations of the earth have been
directed by God to adhere to the laws of nature, and to the religion of
the patriarchs.'
(M Samuels - 'Memoirs of Moses Mendelssohn')
It is worth noting that the Weishaupt agenda became public
via an accident ('Act of God') whereby secret documents came into public
possession; therefore these documents and Weishaupt himself may merely
represent but a part of the greater agenda. He may only ever have been
a local branch-manager in a greater honeycombed hierarchical structure,
whose strings were pulled by agents beyond even his knowledge. A mass of
evidence weighs heavily in favour of Weishaupt being but a worker-bee in
the system which he only apparently initiated via his Order of the Illuminati.
For a fuller picture of this stage of the conspiracy,
I refer the reader to 'Secret Societies and Subversive Movements', by Nesta
H Webster.
Through Freemasonry, the Illuminati secretly orchestrated
the fate of Europe, and from Europe the World.
The implementation of the Talmudic New World Order was
clearly seen and accurately predicted in the 18th Century by Benjamin Franklin:
'I fully agree with General Washington, that we must
protect this young nation from an insidious influence and impenetration.
The menace, gentlemen, is the Jews.
In whatever country Jews have settled in any great
number, they have lowered its moral tone; depreciated its commercial integrity;
have segregated themselves and have not been assimilated; have sneered
at and tried to undermine the Christian religion upon which that nation
is founded, by objecting to its restrictions; have built up a state within
the state; and when opposed have tried to strangle that country to death
financially, as in the case of Spain and Portugal.
For over 1,700 years, the Jews have been bewailing
their sad fate in that they have been exiled from their homeland, as they
call Palestine. But gentlemen, did the world give it to them in fee simple,
they would at once find some reason for not returning. Why? Because they
are vampires, and vampires do not live on vampires. They cannot live only
among themselves. They must subsist on Christians and other people not
of their race.
If you do not exclude them from these United States,
in their Constitution, in less than 200 years they will have swarmed here
in such great numbers that they will dominate and devour the land and change
our form of government, for which we Americans have shed our blood, given
our lives our substance and jeopardized our liberty.
If you do not exclude them, in less than 200 years
our descendants will be working in the fields to furnish them substance,
while they will be in the counting-houses rubbing their hands. I warn you,
gentlemen, if you do not exclude Jews for all time, your children will
curse you in your graves.
Jews, gentlemen, are Asiatics, let them be born where
they will nor how many generations they are away from Asia, they will never
be otherwise. Their ideas do not conform to an American's, and will not
even though they live among us ten generations. A leopard cannot change
its spots. Jews are Asiatics, are a menace to this country if permitted
entrance, and should be excluded by this Constitutional Convention'.
(Statement made in a "Chit chat around the table during
intermission", at the Philadelphia Constitutional Convention of 1787. This
statement was recorded in the dairy of Charles Cotesworth Pinckney, a delegate
from South Carolina - my emphasis)
Then in the 19th Century, Benjamin Disraeli, a baptised
Jew, proclaimed:
'...the world is governed by very different personages
from what is imagined by those who are not behind the scenes...The influence
of the Jews may be traced in the last outbreak of the destructive principle
in Europe. An insurrection takes place against tradition and aristocracy,
against religion and property...The natural equality of men and the abrogation
of property are proclaimed by the secret societies who form provisional
governments and men of Jewish race are found at the head of every one of
them.'
(From statement to House of Commons in 1852)
In Russia, the new power within Judaism was gaining
strength.
The Khazar Jews, or Eastern Jews, were an ancient warrior
race of Turkish (Edomite / Idumean - Esau) origin who had interbred with
the Ashkenazim and converted to Judaism en masse at the end of the 8th
century. They were conquered by the native Russians and the mass of Khazars
remained in Russia under their own closely-knit Talmudic government. They
ghettoised themselves and lived under strict Talmudic Law, segregating
themselves as far as possible from their host nation, except in the areas
of occupation which could be used to carry out the Talmudic edicts to profit
from their host.
From Russia the Khazarian Jews - otherwise called Ashkenazim
- migrated into Poland, Hungary, Czechoslavakia and Eastern Germany. There
again they maintained the self-imposed ghetto community which was ordained
by Talmudic Law.
In 1865 a certain Jewish Rabbi named Rzeichorn delivered
a speech at Prague. It is a very accurate summary of many aspects of the
Protocols which would come to light several decades later. The following
document was published eleven years later by Sir John Radcliff, who was
assassinated shortly afterwards, giving testimony to the powers of the
secret organisation of inner elite Jewry even then. It is also a stark
eye-opener for anyone who harbours the impression that true orthodox Judaism
is a religion, like others, based upon the pursuit of spiritual betterment,
love and universal peace. Just like the Protocols, since this document
was published, the plan described within it has provably come to pass:
"Gold in the hands of experts will always be the most
useful weapon for those that possess it and an object of envy for those
who are without it.
"With gold one can buy the most upright consciences,
with gold one can fix the value of every stock, the price of every merchandise,
one can loan it to states that afterwards one holds at ones mercy.
"Already the principal banks, the stock-exchanges throughout
the world, the loans to all the governments are in our hands.
"The other great power is the press. By ceaselessly
repeating certain ideas, the press in the end makes them considered as
truths. The theatre renders similar services, everywhere theatre and press
follow our directives. By an indefatigable campaign in favour of the Democratic
form of government, we will divide the Gentiles amongst themselves in political
parties, we shall thus destroy the unity of their nations, we will sow
the seeds of discord (Deuteronomy 28:14*; Matthew 12:25). Powerless, they
will have to accept the law of our bank, always united, always devoted
to our cause.
*Deuteronomy 28:14 And thou shalt not go aside
from any of the Words which I command thee this day, [to] the right hand
(politics), or [to] the left (politics), to go after other gods to serve
them.
Matthew 12:25 And Jesus knew their thoughts, and
said unto them, Every kingdom divided against itself is brought to desolation;
and every city or house divided against itself shall not stand:
"We will push the Christians into wars, by a judicious
exploitation of their pride and stupidity. They will massacre each other
and thus make more space where we can place our own people.
"The possession of land has always procured influence
and power. In the name of social justice and equality, we will divide the
great properties; we will give small fragments of these properties to the
peasants who desire them with all their heart, but who will soon be indebted
to us by the very exploitation of these properties. Our capital will enable
us to become the real masters. In our turn we shall become the great owners
of land, and this possession will assure our power.
"Let us use all our force to replace the circulation
of gold by that of paper: our banks will absorb the gold, and we shall
decide then what value the paper money will have, this will make us the
masters of every man's existence.
"We have amongst ourselves many fine orators capable
of feigning enthusiasm and of convincing the masses! We will send them
amongst the nations to announce the changes that will make the happiness
and prosperity of mankind.
"By gold and by flattery, we will win the proletariat,
who will take on their shoulders the job of exterminating Christian capitalism.
We will promise to the workers salaries that they have never even dared
dream of, but we will also heighten the price of all necessities, so much
so, that our profits will be even greater.
"In this manner we will prepare the revolutions that
the Christians will conduct themselves and out of which we shall collect
the fruits. By our jokes and by our attacks we will render their priests
ridiculous and eventually odious, their religion as ridiculous, as odious
as their priests. We shall become masters of their souls, because our pious
attachment to our religion will prove to them the superiority of our souls.
"We have already established men of ours in all the
key positions. Let us make every effort to furnish the goys with lawyers
and doctors. Lawyers get to know about every interest. Doctors, once they
cross the threshold of a house, become the confessors and directors of
their patient's conscience. But above all, let us get the control of the
education, of the schools. By them we will spread the ideas that are useful
for us, and we will mould the children's brains as we wish. If one of us
falls into the claws of justice by misfortune, let us all go to his aid,
finding as many witnesses as may be needed to save him from his judges
until the moment comes when it will be us who will be judges."
(Rzeichorn, published by Sir John Radcliff in 1876)
The preceding quotation was written in 1943 in John Amery's
England
and Europe, to which he adds:
We have only to add from the Judisk Tidskrift No. 57,
1929, the following short passage we owe to the pen of a certain BLUMENTHAL:
"Our race has given to the world a new Messiah, but
he has two faces and bears two names, on one side he is called ROTHSCHILD,
head of the great capitalists, on the other, Karl
MARX, the high priest of the enemies of capitalism."
BLUMENTHAL could have added now that if his Messiah has
two faces he also has two masks, that of ROOSEVELT and American imperialism,
and that of STALIN and the Communist paradise. Between the two, the British
Empire is indeed trapped.
How all of the above seems to echo the preceding
Mosaic edicts in the Old Testament, according to which Rabbi Rzeichorn
is to be considered a righteous man for his apparent strict observance
of the Laws of YHWH, but remember that appearances can be and often are
deceptive. A counterfeit will deceive no-one and will be useless if it
does not appear to be the same as the genuine article it seeks to replace;
but even a carefully-made counterfeit will fool only those who do not know
the difference:
This day will I begin to put the dread of you and the
fear of you upon the nations that are under the whole heaven, who shall
hear the report of you, and shall tremble, and be in anguish because of
you. (Deuteronomy 2:25) For the Lord your God blesses you, as he promised
you; and you shall lend to many nations, but you shall not borrow; and
you shall reign over many nations, but they shall not reign over you. (Deuteronomy
15:6) Both your male slaves, and your female slaves, which you shall have,
shall be of the nations that are around you; of them shall you buy male
slaves and female slaves. Moreover of the children of the strangers that
do sojourn among you, of them shall you buy, and of their families that
are with you, which they fathered in your land; and they shall be your
possession. (Leviticus 25:44-45) And I will shake all nations, so that
the treasures of all nations shall come; and I will fill this house with
glory, says the Lord of hosts. The silver is mine, and the gold is mine,
says the Lord of hosts. (Tanach - Twelve Prophets - Chagai / Hagai Chapter
2:7-8)
And from the Talmudic writings of the Rabbis
of the ages, Rzeichorn shows himself to be merely repeating the views of
the other self-proclaimed 'god-men' of his 'tribe':
"Thou shalt not do injury to your neighbor, but it
is not said, 'Thou shalt not do injury to a goy." (Mishna Sanhedryn 57).
When you go to war, do not go as the first, so that you may return as the
first. Five things has Kannan recommended to his sons: 'Love each other;
love the robbery; hate your masters; and never tell the truth' (Pesachim
F. 113-B) "A Jew may rob a goy - that is, he may cheat him in a bill, if
unlikely to be perceived by him." (Schulchan ARUCH, Choszen Hamiszpat 28,
Art. 3 and 4). "Those who do not confess the Torah and the Prophets must
be killed. Who has the power to kill them, let them kill them openly, with
the sword. If not, let them use artifices, till they are done away with."
(Schulchan Aruch, Choszen Hamiszpat 424, 5) "All property of other nations
belongs to the Jewish nation, which consequently is entitled to seize upon
it without any scruples. An orthodox Jew is not bound to observe principles
of morality towards people of other tribes. He may act contrary to morality,
if profitable to himself or to Jews in general." (Schulchan Aruch, Choszen
Hamiszpat 348).
It was from Jews of these fiercely Talmudic Eastern European
and Russian communities that the philosophy of Zionism was launched upon
the world political stage at the end of the 19th Century. The fact that
the eastern Jews had absolutely no racial ties or rights to this was not
taken into account in the later creation of the Jewish state of 'Israel'
by the worldwide cabal of Zionists in 1948 (see
Ezekiel 11:15). Of course, the concept of Zionism also has sinister implications
for the world's Gentiles, as we have witnessed from the Talmudic passages
previously cited. The main excuse used to convince the West that Zionism
was desirable, was the mass reporting in the press of terrible persecution
of Jews in the homeland. This was essentially press-led propaganda to generate
sympathy for the cause.
At the same time as Zionism was being fermented in the
West and continued to gain support there in essentially Protestant (Old
Testament biased) political minds, who wished to aid the cause of their
religious forebears, so in the East the philosophy of Communism was being
developed and began to grow as a substantial political force. The Communist
philosophers and leaders were drawn from Talmudic Jewish areas of Russia.
The very ideal of Communism was to destroy the existing social order and
rule over Russia, then to take that further towards a world revolution.
Again, the passages of Deuteronomy, the Talmud and the Protocols illustrate
this is the exact same agenda as has been shown to be an ancient conspiracy
maintained and executed throughout the past 2,600 years up until this point
in question.
Zionism and Bolshevism succeeded in the same week in
1917.
The former in London, when the British government finally
committed itself to the establishment of a Jewish Palestine, and the latter
in Moscow at the outbreak of the Bolshevik Revolution.
One bitter irony of this saga was that having conquered
Russia under a Judaic government, Bolshevism had destroyed the very reason
for which Zionism officially came into being - the alleged persecution
of the Jews in Russia. The Communist government, consisting largely of
Jews, made anti-Semitism illegal. But this was all very conveniently forgotten
as the British and American Zionists ploughed forward on their 'Holy' mission.
Zionism and Communism were undoubtedly two sides of the
same coin. The situation is well summarised by the following passage from
Douglas Reed:
In the tradition of Edmund Burke and John Robison, George
Washington and Alexander Hamilton and Disraeli, Mr Winston Churchill wrote:
'It would almost seem as if the Gospel of Christ and
the gospel of anti-Christ were designed to originate from the same people;
and that this mystic and mysterious race had been chosen for the supreme
manifestations, both of the divine and the diabolical...From the days of
'Spartacus' Weishaupt to those of Karl Marx, and down to Trotsky (Russia),
Bela Kun (Hungary), Rosa Luxembourg (Germany) and Emma Goldman (United
States), this worldwide conspiracy for the overthrow of civilisation and
for the reconstitution of society on the basis of arrested development,
of envious malevolence and impossible equality, has been steadily growing.
It played, as a modern writer, Mrs Nesta Webster, has so ably shown, a
definitely recognisable part in the tragedy of the French Revolution. It
has been the mainspring of every subversive movement during the nineteenth
century; and now at last this band of extraordinary personalities from
the underworld of the great cities of Europe and America have gripped the
Russian people by the hair of their heads and have become practically the
undisputed masters of that enormous empire. There is no need to exaggerate
the part played in the creation of Bolshevism and in the bringing about
of the Russian Revolution by these international
and for the most part atheistical Jews (the Synagogue of Satan - Rev. 2:9).
It is certainly a very great one; it probably outweighs all others.'
This is the last candid statement (discoverable by me)
from a leading public man on this question. After it the ban on public
discussion came down and the great silence ensued, which continues to this
day. In 1953 Mr Churchill refused permission (requisite under English Law)
for a photostat to be made of this article (Illustrated Sunday Herald,
February 8, 1920), without saying why.
'...Mr Winston Churchill in 1922 (when he was Colonial
Secretary), "Unauthorised statements have been made to the effect that
the purpose in view is to create a wholly Jewish Palestine. Phrases have
been used such as 'Palestine is to become as Jewish as England is English'
" (a direct rebuke to Dr Weizmann) "His Majesty's government regard any
such suggestion as impracticable and have no such aim in view. Nor have
they at any time contemplated the disappearance or subordination of the
Arabic population, language or culture in Palestine" (in the Second World
War, as Prime Minister, and after it as Opposition leader, Mr Churchill
gave his support to the process here denied).
(The Controversy of Zion, Douglas Reed)
Of course, Churchill would go on to be one of the pivotal
figures of world history, working closely with Jewish and non-Jewish Zionist
bankers and politicians such as the Rothschilds. He was undoubtedly an
agent of the Illuminati/Elders by then.
Since the Second World War, the whole subject of the ancient
conspiracy, the Jewish hatred of the Gentile nations, and the very historical
records which show the massive destructive influence which the Jews have
had upon mankind, have all been made taboo. The average person reacts with
outrage and horror today at the very suggestion that the Jewish people
may be anything other than the world's most persecuted race. But the average
person has absolutely no information on which to base his or her opinion.
The reaction to exposure of the ancient conspiracy is merely a pre-programmed
Pavlovian reaction, created and instilled by the very perpetrators of the
same ancient conspiracy. And today, very few will dare speak above a whisper
of that all-encompassing Judaic oppression of mankind. Just like the Jews
of old became Christians in order to escape persecution, so has most of
the general population become agents of Judaism, knowingly or unknowingly,
as in the days of the Biblical Esther:
And in every province, and in every city, wherever
the king's command and his decree came, the Jews had joy and gladness,
a feast and a good day. And many of the people of the land became Jews;
for the fear of the Jews fell upon them.
(Esther 8:17)
It is extremely rare today to find information about the
ancient conspiracy, due to the mass censorship of the printed word, and
the unwillingness of the general population to consider as a possibility
something which they have been brought up since birth to see as outrageous
and ridiculous. Each generation is born into a world of greater and greater
censorship and illusion*. Eventually, it will be impossible to trace
the true history of the Jews and their destructive influence. Everyone
will have become so Judaised that the very thought of a Judaic oppression
will be alien to the minds of all.
* Revelation 12:9
12:9 And the great dragon was cast out, that old serpent,
called the Devil, and Satan, which deceiveth the whole world: he
was cast out to the earth, and his angels (you - Luke 9:55) were cast out
with him (Matthew 25:41).
How unusual then it was to hear the following words on
a major television news station (CNN):
'Every race has inherited traits. In the case of the
Jews they include trading, money-changing, usury, and a loathing for "productive
labor" which is scorned as beneath the dignity of the Jews in their "bible"
called "THE TALMUD." (NOT The Torah/Pentateuch - JAH)
The Jews have not changed since the days when Jesus
Christ took up a whip and drove "the money changers out of the Temple."
Jews have always united to form monopolies. Today they control all the
department store chains and speciality shops along with the lucrative jewellery
and animal fur trade. Jews dominate the fields of all precious metals such
as gold, silver, platinum, tin, lead, etc. They will always band together
to drive Gentile competitors out of business.
Today America is being flooded with Jewish immigrants
from Russia and even 20,000 per year leave Israel for the U. S. - all with
dollar signs in their eyes. Jews have used their vaunted money-power to
seize control of the Democratic Party and constitute over 50% of all its
financial contributions. Today they are buying up more and more major U.
S. companies. While only 3% of the population, the Jews control over 25%
of the nation's wealth and this percentage rises every year. They are the
only racial group totally organized to work for political domination over
America.
Opposition to the Jews did not begin in Germany but
dates back before the birth of Christ over 2,000 years ago! Study the statements
made by "The world's greatest men." They reveal why the "wandering Jews"
have made enemies out of every host country that ever accepted them.'
(Shimon Peres Israeli Prime Minister, talking about
Orthodox Jewish Rabbis on CNN, November 14, 1995)
The blatant 'swagger' and admission by those aligned with
Israel is allowed to go almost unchallenged by the cowering West. They
are allowed to express anti-Gentile sentiments in their own country, about
themselves, which would be classed as 'anti-Semitic' for someone to merely
report in the West. The following extract appeared in an article the Israeli
newspaper Haaretz, discussing the killing of 100 Lebanese civilians in
April of the same year:
"We killed them out of a certain naive hubris. Believing
with absolute certitude that now, with the White House, the Senate, and
much of the American media in our hands, the lives of others do not count
as much as our own ..."
(Ari Shavat. Reproduced in the New York Times,
May 27th, 1999)
Had the above been said by a Gentile, then the force of
Jewry and the ignorant Gentile 'politically correct' would undoubtedly
have been brought against its author.
The Judaic/Zionist onslaught seems almost impossible to
oppose, when all courageous efforts by men of integrity to inform the world
of the ancient conspiracy fall largely on deaf, and even offended, ears.
One can only imagine what kind of a better world we would have today, had
the masses rallied in support of those opposing the ancient conspiracy,
rather than condemning them, or opposing them. Today, the Establishment
is awash with Illuminati agents who don't even need to be coerced, bribed
and threatened into conforming to the Illuminati agenda, like their predecessors
did in the earlier half of the Twentieth Century. The Jewish Zionist leader,
Chaim Weismann stated in 1920:
'We told the authorities in London; we shall be in
Palestine whether you want us there or not. You may speed up or slow down
our coming, but it would be better for you to help us, otherwise our constructive
force will turn into a destructive one that will bring about ferment in
the entire world.'
(Judishe Rundschau, No. 4, 1920, Germany)
...so stated the Jewish banker, Paul Warburg:
'We will have a world government whether you like it
or not. The only question is whether that government will be achieved by
conquest or consent.'
(February 17, 1950, as he testified before the
U.S. Senate)
And what unified power exists that could bring entire
nations to their knees to surrender to the tyranny of that single power?
Surely none other than that ancient secret society which interpenetrates
the other societies, secret and open. A secret society so intrinsic within
non-Jewish culture that the inherent culture does not even realise how
Judaised it is. A cabal of parasitic Satanists so self-assured that it
has on numerous occasions openly admitted its existence and paraded itself
before the goyim as if to both test the apathetic gullibility of the host
and to gloat at its own mastery of the art of deceit. And still the masses
of the Gentile nations and the majority of the Jewish people ignore or
even defend the dreadful imposition of the few self-appointed 'god-like'
Elders upon the world's population. One such example of this Jewish 'swagger'
is expressed in the words of Jewish Philosopher, the Rabbi
Marcus Eli Ravage:
If you really are serious when you talk of Jewish plots,
may I not draw your attention to the one worth talking about? What use
is it wasting words on the alleged control of your public opinion by Jewish
financiers, newspaper owners and movie magnates, when you might as well
justly accuse us of the proved control of your whole civilisation by the
Jewish Gospels? (Beware: he is here trying to cast doubt on The Bible for
his master Satan and his Synagogue - the Elders of Zion - who, in the Protocols,
have vowed to destroy religion and stop people from believing God - JAH.)
You have not begun to appreciate the real depth of
our guilt. We are intruders. We are disturbers. We are subverters. We have
taken your natural world, your ideals, your destiny, and played havoc with
them. We have been at the bottom not merely of the last great war but of
nearly all your wars, not only of the Russian but of every other major
revolution in your history. We have brought discord and confusion and frustration
into your personal and public life. We are still doing it. No one can tell
how long we shall go on doing it. ...And the end is still a long way off.
We still dominate you. At this very moment your churches are torn asunder
by a civil war between Fundamentalists and Modernists, that is to say between
those who cling to our teachings and those who are striving by slow steps
to dispossess us.
(An article for The Century Magazine, Vol.
115, January 1928. No. 3)
On 12 January 1952, Rabbi Emanuel Rabinovich was asked
to give a keynote speech to the Emergency Council of European Rabbis
in Budapest, Hungary. The implications of the following extract are chilling
for all to read (especially socialists, communists, 'radicals', politically-correct
pressure-groups of all types, and Jewish pressure-groups such as the Anti-Defamation
League) who would promote pro-Jewish policies and who would refute that
there is a policy to use race relations to degrade society. Here is as
blatant an admission as you are going to get and further evidence that
the Protocols are very real and actively being updated to synchronise with
current world events and the social status as it develops. However, as
can be seen from the following, the Jewish Illuminati don't always get
it their own way:
"Greetings, my children! You have been called here
to recapitulate the principal steps of our new program. As you know, we
had hoped to have twenty years between the wars to consolidate the great
gains which we made from World War II, but our increasing numbers in certain
vital areas is arousing opposition to us, and we must now work with every
means at our disposal to precipitate World War III.
"The goal for which we have striven so concertedly
for three thousand years is at last within our reach, and because its fulfilment
is so apparent, it behooves us to increase our efforts and our caution
tenfold. I can safely promise you that before ten years have passed, our
race will have its rightful place in the world, with every Jew a king and
every gentile a slave! (applause from the gathering)
"You remember the success of our propaganda campaign
during the 1930's, which aroused anti-American passions in Germany, at
the same time we were arousing anti-German passions in America, a campaign
which culminated in the Second World War. A similar propaganda campaign
is now being waged intensively throughout the world. A war fever is being
worked up in Russia by an incessant anti-American barrage, while a nationwide
anti-Communist scare is sweeping America. This campaign is forcing all
of the smaller nations to choose between the partnership of Russia or an
alliance with the United States.
"Our most pressing problem at the moment is to inflame
the lagging militaristic spirit of the Americans. (The failure of the Universal
Military Training Act was a great setback to our plans, but we are assured
that a suitable measure will be rushed through Congress immediately after
the 1952 elections.) The Russian as well as the Asiatic peoples, are well
under control, and offer no objections to war, but we must wait to secure
the Americans.
"This program will achieve its objective, the
Third
World War, which will surpass in destruction all previous contests.
Israel, of course, will remain neutral, and when both sides are devastated
and exhausted, we will arbitrate, sending our Control Commissions into
all of the wrecked countries. This war will end for all time our struggle
against gentiles. We will openly reveal our identity with the races of
Asia and Africa. I can state with assurance that the last generations of
white children are being born. Our Control Commissions will, in the interests
of peace and wiping out inter-racial tensions, forbid whites to mate with
whites. The white women must cohabit with members of the dark races, the
white men with black women. Thus the white race will disappear, for mixing
the dark with the white means the end of the white man, and our most dangerous
enemy, will become only a memory.
"We will embark on an era of ten thousand years of
peace and plenty, the Pax Judaica, and our race will rule undisputed over
the earth. Our superior intelligence will easily enable us to retain mastery
over a world of dark peoples.
"There will be no more religions. Not only would the
existence of a priest class remain a constant danger to our rule, but belief
in an afterlife would give spiritual strength to irreconcilable elements
in many countries. We will, however, retain the rituals and the customs
of Judaism as the mark of our hereditary ruling caste, strengthened by
our racial laws so that no Jew will be allowed to marry outside our race,
nor will any stranger be accepted by us.
"We may have to repeat the grim days of World War II,
when we were forced to let the Hitlerite bands (Hitler was a Jew and so
were some of his generals) sacrifice some of our people, in order that
we may have adequate documentation and witnesses to legally justify our
trial and execution of the leaders of America and Russia as war criminals,
after we have dictated the peace. I am sure you will need little preparation
for such a duty, for sacrifice has always been the watchword of our people,
and the death of a few thousand Jews in exchange for world leadership is
indeed a small price to pay.
"To convince you of the certainty of that leadership,
let me point out to you how we have turned all of the inventions of the
white man into weapons against him. His printing presses and radios are
the mouthpieces for our desires, and his heavy industry manufactures the
instruments which he sends out to arm Asia and Africa against him. Our
interests in Washington are greatly extending the Point Four program for
developing industry in backward areas of the world so that after industrial
plants and cities of Europe and America are destroyed by atomic warfare,
the whites can offer no resistance against the larger masses of the dark
races, who will maintain an unchallenged technological superiority.
"And so, with the vision of world victory before you,
go back to your countries and intensify your good work, until that approaching
day when Israel will reveal herself in all her glorious destiny as the
Light of the World!"
(Quoted in Canadian Intelligence Service, Sept 1952
and in US publication
Common Sense 1952)
The writer Eustace Mullins reports in his book The
History of the Jews, that a double agent, who had infiltrated the inner
circle of the Anti-Defamation League of the B'nai B'rith revealed to him
that the publication and circulation of Rabinovich's speech had caused
the Jews to postpone all of their plans for a Third
World War. The translator from Yiddish of the quote, Henry H. Klein,
was a Jew who was horrified by the plans of his own people. He died in
New York the day after a meeting with a CIA man, and the CIA now possess
a copy of this document.
And here it is so interesting to compare the above admission
that the Jewish people are considered 'sacrifices' to a greater cause of
world takeover by their elite brethren. As well as a mass of scientific
and historical evidence that the Second World War was simply a tool for
the furthering of the New World Order agenda, circumstantial evidence also
exists for the planned sacrifice of 6 million people as part of the process.
The Jew Ben Hecht, in his book Perfidy, quotes Max Nordau at the
World Zionist Conference of 1911:
'The same righteous governments are preparing complete
annihilation for six million people.'
However, as true history has shown, the six million figure
was never reached in the so-called Holocaust except as a symbolic number
used to magnify the Jewish losses and gain support for Zionism. Although,
undoubtedly millions of Jews and non-Jews did indeed suffer and were a
bloody sacrifice to the god of the Elders of Zion.
'There is scarcely an event in modern history that
cannot be traced to the Jews. We Jews today, are nothing else but the world's
seducers, its destroyer's, its incendiaries...Our last revolution is not
yet made.''
(Jewish writer, Oscar Levy, The World Significance
of the Russian Revolution)
And so too say the Protocols of the Learned Elders
of Zion.
Time and time again, throughout history, Jews and Zionists
have repeated these same anti-Gentile views, all of which resonate in perfect
sympathy with this infamous document, so often condemned as a fraud and
anti-Semitic. Even if the Protocols had never existed, there would be ample
proof of the very conspiracy which they document so graphically. How nonsensical
are the cries of 'anti-Semitic!' and 'fraud!' in relation to the Protocols.
How could anyone who knows the true history of Judaism and the background
of this document (in the next section) decry their authenticity? (Unless
they are complicit in their crimes).
The enormous challenge we face, Gentiles and Jews alike,
is whether we will wake up to the truth in time to be effective against
the full implementation of the plot against mankind which has provably
been in existence for at least 2,600 years - before 'the last revolution
is...made'.
History of the Origin of the Protocols
In order to provide the most concise and detailed information
on the origin of the Protocols themselves I will quote here extensively
from the book 'Waters Flowing Eastward' by L Fry:
The protocols given to the world by Nilus are only the
latest known edition of the Jewish leaders' programme. The story of how
the latter came into general circulation is an interesting one.
In 1884 the daughter of a Russian general, Mlle. Justine
Glinka, was endeavouring to serve her country in Paris by obtaining political
information, which she communicated to General Orgevskii 4
in St. Petersburg. For this purpose she employed a Jew, Joseph Schorst,5
member of the Miz-raim Lodge in Paris. One day Schorst offered to obtain
for her a document of great importance to Russia, on payment of 2,500 francs.
This sum being received from St. Petersburg was paid over and the document
handed to Mlle. Glinka.6
She forwarded the French original, accompanied by a Russian
translation, to Orgevskii, who in turn handed it to his chief, General
Cherevin, for transmission to the Tsar. But Cherevin, under obligation
to wealthy Jews, refused to transmit it, merely filing it in the archives.7
Meantime there appeared in Paris certain books on Russian
court life 8 which displeased
the Tsar, who ordered his secret police to discover their authorship. This
was falsely attributed, perhaps with malicious intent, 9
to Mlle. Glinka, and on her return to Russia she was banished to her estate
in Orel. To the marechal de noblesse of this district, Alexis Sukhotin,
Mlle. Glinka gave a copy of the Protocols. Sukhotin showed the document
to two friends, Stepanov and Nilus; the former had it printed and circulated
privately in 1897; the second, Professor Sergius A. Nilus, published it
for the first time in Tsarskoe-Tselo (Russia) in 1901, in a book entitled
The
Great Within the Small. Then, about the same time, a friend of Nilus,
G. Butmi, also brought it out and a copy was deposited in the British Museum
on August 10, 1906.
Meantime, through Jewish members 10
of the Russian police, minutes of the proceedings of the Basle congress
ll
in 1897 had been obtained and these were found to correspond with the Protocols.
l2
In January 1917, Nilus had prepared a second edition,
revised and documented, for publication. But before it could be put on
the market, the revolution of March 1917 had taken place, and Kerenskii,
who had succeeded to power, ordered the whole edition of Nilus's book to
be destroyed. In 1924, Prof. Nilus was arrested by the Cheka in Kiev, imprisoned,
and tortured; he was told by the Jewish president of the court, that this
treatment was meted out to him for "having done them incalculable harm
in publishing the Protocols". Released for a few months, he was again led
before the G. P. U. (Cheka), this time in Moscow and confined. Set at liberty
in February 1926, he died in exile in the district of Vladimir on January
13, 1929.
A few copies of Nilus's second edition were saved and
sent to other countries where they were published : in Germany, by Gottfreid
zum Beek (1919); in England, by The Britons (1920); in France, by Mgr.
Jouin in La Revue Internationale des Societes Secretes, and by Urbain Gohier
in La Vieille France; in the United States, by Small, Maynard & Co.
(Boston 1920), and by The Beckwith Co (New York 1921). Later, editions
appeared in Italian, Russian, Arabic, and even in Japanese.
Such is the simple story of how these Protocols reached
Russia and thence came into general circulation.
Mr. Stepanov's deposition relative to it is here given
as corroboration.
" In 1895, my neighbour in the district of Toula, Major
(retired) Alexis Sukhotin, gave me a manuscript copy of the Protocols of
the Wise Men of Zion. He told me that a lady of his acquaintance, whose
name he did not mention, residing in Paris, had found it at the house of
a friend, a Jew. Before leaving Paris, she had secretly translated it and
had brought this one copy to Russia and given it to Sukhotin.
"At first I mimeographed this translation, but finding
it difficult to read, I resolved to have it printed, making no mention
of the date, town, or printer's name. In this I was helped by Arcadii Ippolitovich
Kelepovskii, who at that time was chief of the household of Grand Duke
Sergius.
He gave the document to be printed by the district
printing press. This took place in 1897. Sergius Nilus inserted these Protocols
in his work and added his own commentary.
Signed PHILIP PETROVICH STEPANOV."
Formerly Procurator of the Synod of Moscow, Chamberlain,
Privy Councillor, and (in 1897) Chief of the Moscow Kursk Railway in the
town of Orel. April 17, 1927.
Witnessed by PRINCE DIMITRI GALITZIN.
President of the Russian Colony of Emigrants at Stari
Fontag.
Notes
4. At that time Secretary to the Minister of the Interior,
General Cherevin.
5. Alias Schapiro, whose father had been sentenced in
London, two years previous, to ten years penal servitude for counterfeiting.
6. Schorst fled to Egypt where, according to French police
archives, he was murdered.
7. On his death in 1896, he willed a copy of his memoirs
containing the Protocols to Nicholas II.
8 Published under the pseudonym "Count Vassilii", their
real author was Mme. Juliette Adam, using material furnished by Princess
Demidov-San Donato, Princess Radzivill, and other Russians.
9. Among the Jews in the Russian secret service in Paris
was Maniulov, whose odious character is drawn by M. Paleologue, Mémoires.
10. Notably Eno Azev and Efrom. The latter, formerly a
rabbi, died in 1925 in a monastery in Serbia, where he had taken refuge
he used to tell the monks that the protocols were but a small part of Jewish
plans for ruling the world and a feeble expression of their hatred of the
gentiles.
11. Supra Part I.
12. The Russian government had learned that at meetings
of the B'nai Brith in New York in 1893-94, Jacob Schiff (supra, 52, 53)
had been named chairman of the committee on the revolutionary movement
in Russia.
(end of quotation)
Fraud or Genuine?
The fact remains that there is no documentary proof that
the Protocols of the Elders of Zion are what they say they are. Allegations
of forgery and fraud have dogged their public history. However, despite
many opinions to the contrary, the documents have never been proved to
be fraudulent.
I have provided here some tiny amount of the vast amount
of circumstantial evidence which indicates that the Protocols are simply
one of many documents to betray an agenda of world domination which remains
unchanged, stretching back through time to its first incarnation as the
Book of Deuteronomy - the Second Law as given to Moses by Yahweh. The fact
that the Protocols are demonstrably the agenda to which the world's politicians
have orchestrated public and secretive manoeuvres to bring the world to
the brink of a New World Order under a One World Government, is almost
impossible to refute.
That such a proven agenda could have arisen in the 19th
century, contemporary with the unfolding political events therein - the
Bolshevik Revolution, two World Wars and Zionism - is possible, but extremely
unlikely. Because it also fits very well many of the events which unfolded
in the previous centuries too. In fact, the very centuries considered -
stretching all the way back to the 7th Century BC, where I have shown,
a remarkably similar document was written by the Levitical priests who
ruled the people of Jerusalem. And no conspiratorial document of its type
has ever been found to pre-date this period.
As we have seen, to declare the Protocols a 'Catholic'
conspiracy blamed upon Jews would be tantamount to calling Deuteronomy
one too, and many other biblical books which predate the formation of the
Roman Church by many centuries. Nevertheless, there is ample proof to show
that the Catholic Church has played an enormously
useful role in the implementation of the ancient conspiracy by acting as
a carrier for Judaic ideas, and as a vehicle for infiltration by Marranos,
Jewish popes and Illumined Freemasons (such as the P2 lodge).
It is my belief that the Protocols are what they say they
are. However, to believe that this conspiracy against mankind is purely
orchestrated and executed by Jews would be nonsensical. Even the most cursory
glance through the pages of history proves the fact that Gentiles of all
denominations have played major roles in the implementation of this plan
- never more so than under the banner of 'Christianity'
- knowingly or unknowingly; whilst the majority of the world's Jews have
had no knowledge of, or have given no support to, the plan to which they
have signed their name by declaring themselves to be 'Jewish'. In fact,
the largest opposition to Zionism in the formative years of this century
came from Western Jews and native Palestinian Jews. However, since the
Second World War and the Holocaust, it has even become somewhat of a faux
pas and considered anti-Semitic for even Jews to declare opposition to
Zionism and Talmudic extremism.
This is a great testament to the truth that history is
written by the winners. And the winners always use history to programme
the next generation to accept their own agenda unquestioningly. As the
following Protocols will so ably demonstrate.
The Publisher's (Flanders Hall Publishing Company, New
Orleans) Foreword to the revised edition of 'Waters Flowing Eastward'
mentions the following:
Several arguments against the authenticity of the Protocols
are examined in the book. It may be well to mention here a completely new
argument, for their authenticity. In 1937, a Russian ex-officer of the
Czarist Intelligence Service asked to see a friend of ours. The Russian
ex-officer was accompanied, on the occasion of the meeting, by a man well
and favourably known to our friend. The ex-officer informed our friend
and his wife that, in 1897, he had been called from Washington, where he
was working for the Czarist government, and sent to Basle, Switzerland,
where the first Zionist Congress was being held that year. He was given
a small detachment of picked secret service men. While the Jews were in
secret conclave, his men staged a sham fire and dashed into the room shouting
Fire! Fire! In the ensuing confusion he made his way quickly to the President's
or Lecturer's table and took possession of all the papers that were on
it. These papers contained the originals of the Protocols.
This Russian officer escaped out of Russia
in 1917 and lived mostly in Paris. He was an old man in 1937. Needless
to say our friend's veracity and reliability are unquestioned.
Critics of the Protocols' genuineness have claimed that
they were a forgery, derived from earlier documents and used as propaganda
against the Jews by their opponents. As I hope I have shown here, the documents
most certainly do derive from an earlier common source, but that does not
make them forgeries, any more than latest encyclopaedia can be condemned
as a deliberate forgery because previous works of an almost identical nature
already exist.
This argument also falls down on another point, which
actually operates in favour of the theory of the Jewish origin, rather
than against it. It has often been argued that the Protocols bear remarkable
likeness to a book called 'Dialogues aux Enfers entre Machiavelli et
Montesquieu' (also known as the 'Geneva Dialogues'), published
anonymously in Brussels in 1865. However, the passages quoted as being
plagiarised from the Geneva Dialogues for the Protocols are remarkably
similar to those in a book published in 1850, called, similarly, 'Machiavelli,
Montesquieu and Rousseau' by Jacob Venedy. And Venedy was a Jew and
a Freemason! He was a revolutionary and also a close associate of the Jew
Karl Marx (real name Mordecai,) and Maurice Joly, the true author of
the Geneva Dialogues! 'Marx's father Heinrich, whose original name was
Hirschel ha-Levi, was the son of a rabbi and the descendant of talmudic
scholars for many generations.' (Encyclopaedia Judaica, 1997). Marx's
Communist Manifesto is clearly Illuminist, and very much in parallel with
the Protocols.
One can't have one's cake and eat it on this line of enquiry,
I am afraid. All roads lead to Zion!
"...there is much in the fact of Bolshevism itself.
In the fact that so many Jews are Bolsheviks. In the fact that the ideals
of Bolshevism are consonant with the finest ideals of Judaism."
(The Jewish Chronicle, April 4, 1918)
'Some call it Marxism I call it Judaism.'
(The American Bulletin, Rabbi S. Wise, May 5, 1935)
The Protocols were initially published in the Russian
newspaper Snamia in 1903 and are believed to have been also published
in 1902/1903 in the newspaper Moskowskija Wiedomosti. Despite a
copy of the book written by Professor Sergyei Nilus (an official at the
Department of Foreign Relations at Moscow) being registered in the British
Museum on August 10th, 1906, they were otherwise unknown outside of Russia
until after the Bolshevik Revolution when Russian emigrants took copies
to North America and Germany. In Bolshevik Russia, they carried the death
sentence for anyone found to be in possession of them. (As far as I am
aware, the entire document deposited in the British Museum has never been
fully translated into English).
The Protocols gained widespread recognition upon their
translation into English, in 1920. They soon became notorious. Esteemed
newspapers such as The Times and The Morning Post (whose
Moscow correspondent Victor E Marsden was responsible in 1921 for the translation
used in this document) covered the story in numerous articles, much to
the chagrin of world Jewry, who immediately began the propaganda bandwagon
rolling. They not only denied that the Protocols were a Jewish plot, but
also that there was any plot whatsoever. The latter was quite clearly false
to all educated men and women of the time.
'Probably so much money and energy were never before
in history expended on the effort to suppress a single document.' The period
of 1920 'marks the end of the time when the Jewish question could be impartially
openly discussed in public.'
(Reed - 'The Controversy of Zion ')
The Press was firmly under the thumb of the vested interests.
Those that went against the grain and published information on the Protocols
were soon brought into line or brought down by financial and political
pressure. As an example, in 1920, Lord Northcliffe, the owner of several
newspapers, as well as being joint proprietor of The Times, caused
to be published in The Times an article called 'The Jewish Peril,
a Disturbing Pamphlet, Call for Enquiry'. This article on the Protocols
called for a proper investigation into the documents. In February 1922,
he set about a fervently anti-Zionist mission, a series of articles about
what was really going on in Palestine. On August 14, 1922 Northcliffe died
of ulcerative endocarditis. He had been confronted on a train to Evian-les-Bains
in June by the editor of The Times, Mr Wickham Steed, with a doctor
who had certified Northcliffe 'insane'. On the strength of this he was
barred from entering the offices of The Times by a police guard,
and his communications were ordered to be ignored by the staff. All of
this despite showing no outward signs of madness to those who later commented
on his appearance or state of mind. However, he had stated that he believed
his life was in danger and that he was being poisoned. This whole story
was suppressed until the publication of 'The Official History of the
Times', thirty years later in 1952!
Thus, one man who had enough power and will to challenge
the Protocols and Zionism on an international stage to an audience of millions,
who was committed to illuminating the world as to the true agenda, had
been removed.
The often cited 'fact' that the Protocols are a 'proven
fraud', is easily dismissed, as it is actually entirely untrue and based
upon a very specific court case. Numerous unsuccessful attempts had been
made by world Jewry to have the Protocols denounced as a forgery. But it
was not until 1933 that any legal action was taken in this respect:
On 26th June, 1933, the Federation of Jewish Communities
of Switzerland and the Berne Jewish Community brought an action against
five members of the Swiss National Front, seeking a judgment that the Protocols
were a forgery and a prohibition of their publication. The procedure of
the Court was astounding, the provisions of the Swiss Civil Code being
deliberately set aside. Sixteen witnesses called by the plaintiffs were
heard, but only one of the forty witnesses called by the defendants was
allowed a hearing. The judge allowed the plaintiffs to appoint two private
stenographers to keep the register of proceedings during the hearing of
their witnesses, instead of entrusting the task to a Court official.
In view of these and similar irregularities, it was
not surprising that, after the case had lasted just on two years, the Court
pronounced the Protocols to be a forgery and demoralising literature. The
decision was given on 14th May, 1935, but it was announced in the Jewish
Press before it was delivered by the Court?
On 1st November, 1937, the Swiss Court of Criminal
Appeal quashed this judgment in its entirety. Jewish propagandists, however,
still declare that the Protocols have been "proved" to be a forgery.
It was natural that the Jews should try to discredit
the Protocols, for their growing fame was focussing more public attention
on other revealing utterances.
(Waters Flowing Eastward - revised and updated
by Rev. Denis Fahey)
The second trial found in favour of the Jewish lobby and
fined the defendants 100 francs costs. But this had nothing to do with
the Protocols. It was due to another article which was included in the
prosecution, entitled Schweizermädchen hüte dich vor schändenen
Juden (Swiss Girls Beware of Dishonourable Jews). The court had stated
that this was 'Jew-baiting' and an 'attempt to defame the Jews as a body'.
The Jewish lobby, who had written in their journals that the Protocols
were a proven forgery later were forced to change their stance to that
their authenticity had not been furnished. But a popular myth survives
of the former stance.
The fact remains, that the Protocols are NOT a proven
forgery.
The fact also remains that since their publication, world
events have unfolded exactly according to their description. We are gradually
being mobilised into a New World Order. The One World Government is being
facilitated by the gradual movement of nation states into larger power
blocks such as the European Union and NAFTA etc. The United Nations has
come into power as a global police force under the excuse of being a protector
and benefactor of the world, exactly as outlined in the Protocols. The
Jews have symbolically 'returned to Palestine', as the State of Israel
now exists as the official universal 'homeland' of all Jews, despite the
vast majority of Jews having no racial connection with Israel whatsoever.
I sincerely hope that the Protocols are a fraud and that
there is no conspiracy. But I believe that the information here presented,
which is but the tiny tip of an enormous iceberg, constitutes ample evidence
of an ancient conspiracy orchestrated by a self-appointed
elite, who are at least intimately associated with the core elect of
international Judaism and have been for a very long time.
Important Note
The very fact that such a conspiracy involving a small
core elect from Zionist Judaism exists does not implicate the mass
of the Jewish people in the conspiracy. Nor does it blame only those of
Jewish persuasion for being complicit. The mass of Jewish people have no
desire to see the New World Order instituted, nor do the majority even
know of the existence of the conspiracy. Jewish people per se should not
be judged according to their religious beliefs or racial descent as being
a part of the conspiracy, as most Jews follow a far more tolerant version
of Judaism which has reformed many of the extreme elements of their historic
creed. Furthermore, many Jewish people have been sacrificed to the cause
outlined in the Protocols through the misguided belief of the elders that
the 'end justifies the means', and all who fall for the cause are greatly
exalted in the eyes of Yahweh.
The above information is provided so that Jews and Gentiles
alike can become more aware of what a small percentage of self-appointed
elite members of the Jewish religion believe and adhere to as their Holy
Law.
Comments in the following text related specifically to
'the Jews' which superficially seem to implicate all Jews do not
reflect my own attitude to this issue as I have already established. However,
these were the words of those individuals quoted and of the publishers
who presented the following document many decades ago, and I hesitate to
censor them.
This document is meant to challenge hatred; racism
and deceit; NOT ferment it.
References
Amery, John; England and Europe, (The Truth
At Last, PO Box 1211, Marietta, Ga. 300061, USA, 1994 [1st ed. 1943])
Eckart, Deitrich; Bolshevism from Moses to Lenin,
(Translated from the German by William L Pierce)
Encyclopaedia Judaica, CD-Rom Edition (Judaica
Multimedia, Israel, 1997)
Freedman, Benjamin H; Facts are Facts, (Omni/Christian
Book Club, CA, 1954)
Fry, L, Edited and revised by Rev. D. Fahey; Waters
Flowing Eastward: The War Against the Kingship of Christ, (Flanders
Hall Publishing Company, LA, 1988, [1st ed. 1931])
Holy Bible - Authorised King James Version and
The King of kings' Bible (http://i.am/jah/kofkad.htm)
Mhor, Jack; If Jews Are Really Persecuted -
Why?, (article from website Radio Islam)
Mullins, Eustace; The History of the Jews,
(The Thunderbolt Inc., Marietta, Ga.)
Pranaitis, Rev. IB; The Talmud Unmasked: The
Secret Rabbinical Teachings Concerning Christians, (Imperial Academy
of Sciences, St. Petersberg, 1892)
Reed, Douglas; The Controversy of Zion,
(Veritas Publishing Company Pty., Ltd., Bullsbrook, W. Australia, 1978
Soncino Talmud, with Tanach, CD Rom Edition, (Davka
Corporation, Chicago)
Soncino Zohar, with Tanach, CD Rom Edition, (Davka
Corporation, Chicago)
Webster, Nesta H: Secret Societies and Subversive
Movements, (1924, Christian Book Club of America)
Article: 1000 Quotes By And About Jews;
(Radio Islam website)
Article: What world famous men said about the
Jews
------------------------------------------------------------------------
| The Protocols of the Learned Elders of
Zion
Text and Commentary
Translated by Victor E. Marsden
Biblical quotes added by JAH |
Preface
Introduction
Who are the Elders?
1 ñ The Basic Doctrine
2 ñ Economic Wars
3 ñ Methods of Conquest
4 ñ Materialism Replaces Religion
5 ñ Despotism and Modern Progress
6 ñ Take-Over Technique
7 ñ World-Wide Wars
8 ñ Provisional Government
9 ñ Re-education
10 ñ Preparing for Power
11 ñ The Totalitarian State
12 ñ Control of the Press
13 ñ Distractions
14 ñ Assault on Religion
15 ñ Ruthless Suppression
16 ñ Brainwashing
17 ñ Abuse of Authority
18 ñ Arrest of Opponents
19 ñ Rulers and People
20 ñ Financial Programme
21 ñ Loans and Credit
22 ñ Power of Gold
23 ñ Instilling Obedience
24 ñ Qualities of the Ruler
Editorial Note
Comments in the following text related specifically to
'the Jews' which superficially seem to implicate all Jews do not reflect
my own attitude to this issue as I have already established. However, these
were the words of those individuals quoted and of the publishers who presented
the following document many decades ago, and I hesitate to censor them.
This document is meant to challenge hatred, racism and
deceit, NOT ferment it.
In the following presentation I have combined two methods
of printing the Protocols for ease of use. I have maintained the headings
and kept the introductory commentaries as provided by the Marsden translation
of Nilus's document. I have also used the method (as employed by Bible
translators) of numbering the paragraphs for ease of further referencing.
PREFACE
The author of this translation of the famous Protocols was
himself a victim of the Revolution. He had lived for many years in Russia
and was married to a Russian lady. Among his other activities in Russia
he had been for a number of years a Russian Correspondent of the MORNING
POST, a position which he occupied when the Revolution broke out, and his
vivid descriptions of events in Russia will still be in the recollection
of many of the readers of that Journal. Naturally he was singled out for
the anger of the Soviet. On the day that Captain Cromie was murdered by
Jews, Victor Marsden was arrested and thrown into the Peter-Paul Prison,
expecting every day to have his name called out for execution. This, however,
he escaped, and eventually he was allowed to return to England very much
of a wreck in bodily health. However, he recovered under treatment and
the devoted care of his wife and friends. One of the first things he undertook,
as soon as he was able, was this translation of the Protocols. Mr. Marsden
was eminently well qualified for the work. His intimate acquaintance with
Russia, Russian life and the Russian language on the one hand, and his
mastery of a terse literary English style on the other, placed him in a
position of advantage which few others could claim. The consequence is
that we have in his version an eminently readable work, and though the
subject-matter is somewhat formless, Mr. Marsden's literary touch reveals
the thread running through the twenty-four Protocols.
It may be said with truth that this work was carried out
at the cost of Mr. Marsden's own life's blood. He told the writer of this
Preface that he could not stand more than an hour at a time of his work
on it in the British Museum, as the diabolical spirit of the matter which
he was obliged to turn into English made him positively ill.
Mr. Marsden's connection with the MORNING POST was not
severed by his return to England, and he was well enough to accept the
post of special correspondent of that journal in the suite of H.R.H., the
Prince of Wales on his Empire tour. From this he returned with the Prince,
apparently in much better health, but within a few days of his landing
he was taken suddenly ill, and died after a very brief illness.
May this work be his crowning monument! In it he has performed
an immense service to the English-speaking world, and there can be little
doubt that it will take its place in the first rank of the English versions
of "THE PROTOCOLS of the Meetings of the LEARNED ELDERS OF ZION."
INTRODUCTION
Of the Protocols themselves little need be said in the way
of introduction. The book in which they are embodied was published by Sergyei
Nilus in Russia in 1905. A copy of this is in the British Museum bearing
the date of its reception, August 10, 1906. All copies that were known
to exist in Russia were destroyed in the Kerensky regime, and under his
successors the possession of a copy by anyone in Soviet land was a crime
sufficient to ensure the owner's of being shot on sight. The fact is in
itself sufficient proof of the genuineness of the Protocols. The Jewish
journals, of course, say that they are a forgery, leaving it to be understood
that Professor Nilus, who embodied them in a work of his own, had concocted
them for his own purposes.
Mr. Henry Ford, in an interview published in the New York
WORLD, February 17th, 1921, put the case for Nilus tersely and convincingly
thus:
"The only statement I care to make about
the Protocols is that they fit in with what is going on. They are sixteen
years old, and they have fitted the world situation up to this time. THEY
FIT IT NOW."
Indeed they do!
The word "Protocol" signifies a précis gummed on
to the front of a document, a draft of a document, minutes of proceedings.
In this instance, "Protocol" means minutes of the proceedings of the Meetings
of the Learned Elders of Zion. These Protocols give the substance of addresses
delivered to the innermost circle of the Rulers of Zion. They reveal the
converted plan of action of the Jewish Nation developed through the ages
and edited by the Elders themselves up to date. Parts and summaries of
the plan have been published from time to time during the centuries as
the secrets of the Elders have leaked out. The claim of the Jews that the
Protocols are forgeries is in itself an admission of their genuineness,
for they NEVER ATTEMPT TO ANSWER THE FACTS corresponding to the THREATS
which the Protocols contain, and, indeed, the correspondence between prophecy
and fulfilment is too glaring to be set aside or obscured. This the Jews
well know and therefore evade.
The presumption is strong that the Protocols were issued,
or reissued, at the First Zionist Congress held at Basle in 1897 under
the presidency of the Father of Modern Zionism, the late Theodore Herzl.
There has been recently published a volume of Herzl's
"Diaries," a translation of some passages which appeared in the JEWISH
CHRONICLE of July 14, 1922. Herzl gives an account of his first visit to
England in 1895, and his conversation with Colonel Goldsmid, a Jew brought
up as a Christian, an officer in the English Army, and at heart a Jew Nationalist
all the time. Goldsmid suggested to Herzl that the best way of expropriating
the English aristocracy, and so destroying their power to protect the people
of England against Jew domination, was to put excessive taxes on the land.
Herzl thought this an excellent idea, and it is now to be found definitely
embodied in Protocol VI!
The above extract from Herzl's diary is an extremely significant
bit of evidence bearing on the existence of the Jew World Plot and authenticity
of the Protocols, but any reader of intelligence will be able; from his
own knowledge of recent history and from his own experience; to confirm
the genuineness of every line of them, and it is in the light of this living
comment that all readers are invited to study Mr. Marsden's translation
of this terribly inhuman document.
And here is another very significant circumstance. The
present successor of Herzl, as leader of the Zionist movement, Dr. Weizmann,
quoted one of these sayings at the send-off banquet given to Chief Rabbi
Hertz on October 6, 1920. The Chief Rabbi was on the point of leaving for
HIS Empire tour with H.R.H., the Prince of Wales. And this is the "saying"
of the Sages which Dr. Weizmann quoted: "A beneficent protection which
God has instituted in the life of the Jew is that He has dispersed him
all over the world." (JEWISH GUARDIAN, Oct. 8, 1920.)
Now compare this with the last clause of but one of Protocol
XI.
"God has granted to us, His Chosen People,
the gift of dispersion, and from this, which appears to all eyes to be
our weakness, has come forth all our strength, which has now brought us
to the threshold of sovereignty over all the world."
The remarkable correspondence between these passages proves
several things. It proves that the Learned Elders exist. It proves that
Dr. Weizmann knows all about them. It proves that the desire for a "National
Home" in Palestine is only camouflage and an infinitesimal part of the
Jew's real object. It proves that the Jews of the world have no intention
of settling in Palestine or any separate country, and that their annual
prayer that they may all meet "Next Year in Jerusalem" is merely a piece
of their characteristic make-believe. It also demonstrates that the Jews
are now a world menace, and that the Aryan races will have to domicile
them permanently out of Europe.
WHO ARE THE ELDERS?
This is a secret which has not been revealed. They are the
Hidden Hand. They are not the "Board of Deputies" (the Jewish Parliament
in England) or the "Universal Israelite Alliance" which sits in Paris.
But the late Walter Rathenau of the Allgemeiner Electricitaets Gesellschaft
has thrown a little light on the subject and doubtless he was in possession
of their names, being, in all likelihood, one of the chief leaders himself.
Writing in the WIENER FREIE PRESSE, December 24, 1912, he said:
"Three hundred men,
each of whom knows all the others, govern the fate of the European continent,
and they elect their successors from their entourage."
In the year 1844, on the eve of the Jewish Revolution of
1848, Benjamin Disraeli, whose real name was Israel, and who was a "damped,"
or baptised Jew, published his novel, 'Coningsby', in which occurs this
ominous passage:
"The world is governed by very different
personages from what is imagined by those who are not behind the scenes."
And he went on to show that these personages were all Jews.
Now that Providence has brought to the light of day these
secret Protocols all men may clearly see the hidden personages specified
by Disraeli at work "behind the scenes" of all the Governments. This revelation
entails on all white peoples the grave responsibility of examining and
revising au fond their attitude towards the Race and Nation which boasts
of its survival over all Empires.
Notes
I ñ "Agentur" and "The Political."
There are two words in this translation which are unusual,
the word "agentur" and "political" used as a substantive, agentur appears
to be a word adopted from the original and it means the whole body of agents
and agencies made use of by the Elders, whether members of the tribe or
their Gentile tools.
By "the Political" Mr. Marsden means, not exactly the
"body politic" but the entire machinery of politics.
II ñ The Symbolic Snake of Judaism.
Protocol 3 opens with a reference to the Symbolic Snake
of Judaism. In his Epilogue to the 1905 Edition of the Protocols, Nilus
gives the following interesting account of this symbol:
"According to the records of secret Jewish Zionism,
Solomon and other Jewish learned men already, in 929 B.C., thought out
a scheme in theory for a peaceful conquest of the whole universe by Zion.
As history developed, this scheme was worked out in detail and completed
by men who were subsequently initiated in this question. These learned
men decided by peaceful means to conquer the world for Zion with the slyness
of the Symbolic Snake*, whose head was to represent those who have been
initiated into the plans of the Jewish administration, and the body of
the Snake to represent the Jewish people ñ the administration was always
kept secret, EVEN FROM THE JEWISH NATION ITSELF. As this Snake penetrated
into the hearts of the nations which it encountered it undermined and devoured
all the non-Jewish power of these States. It is foretold that the Snake
has still to finish its work, strictly adhering to the designed plan*,
until the course which it has to run is closed by the return of its head
to Zion and until, by this means, the Snake has completed its round of
Europe and has encircled it ñ and until, by dint of enchaining Europe,
it has encompassed the whole world. This it is to accomplish by using every
endeavour to subdue the other countries by an ECONOMICAL CONQUEST. The
return of the head of the Snake* to Zion can only be accomplished after
the power of all the Sovereign of Europe has been laid low, that is to
say, when by means of economic crises and wholesale destruction effected
everywhere, there shall have been brought about a spiritual demoralisation
and a moral corruption, chiefly with the assistance of Jewish women masquerading
as French; Italians; etc.. These are the surest spreaders of licentiousness
into the lives of the leading men at the heads of nations. A map of the
course of the Symbolic Snake is shown as follows: ñ Its first stage in
Europe was in 429 B.C. in Greece, where, about the time of Pericles, the
Snake first started eating into the power of that country. The second stage
was in Rome in the time of Augustus, about 69 B.C.. The third in Madrid
in the time of Charles V, in A.D. 1552. The fourth in Paris about 1790,
in the time of Louis XVI. The fifth in London from 1814 onwards (after
the downfall of Napoleon). The sixth in Berlin in 1871 after the Franco-Prussian
war. The seventh in St. Petersburg, over which is drawn the head of the
Snake under the date of 1881. [This "Snake"* is now being drawn through
the Americas and in the United States of America, it is been partially
identified as the "Counsel on Foreign Relations" (C.F.R.)
and the "Tri-Lateral Commission"]. All these States which the Snake traversed
have had the foundations of their constitutions shaken, Germany, with its
apparent power, forming no exception to the rule. In economic conditions,
England and Germany are spared, but only till the conquest of Russia is
accomplished by the Snake, on which at present [i.e., 1905] all its efforts
are concentrated. The further course of the Snake is not shown on this
map, but arrows indicate its next movement towards Moscow, Kiev and Odessa.
It is now well known to us to what extent the latter cities form the centuries
of the militant Jewish race. Constantinople is shown as the last stage
of the Snake's course before it reaches Jerusalem. (This map was drawn
years before the occurrence of the "Young Turk" ñ i.e., Jewish ñ Revolution
in Turkey).
* Genesis 3:14 And the "I AM" God said unto the
serpent,
Because thou hast done this, thou [art] cursed above all cattle, and above
every beast of the field; upon thy belly shalt thou go, and dust shalt
thou eat all the days of thy life:
3:15 And I will put enmity between thee and the woman**,
and between thy seed and her seed; it shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt
bruise his heel.
** Revelation 12:1 And there appeared a great
wonder in heaven; a woman (Israel) clothed with the "sun", and the "moon"
under her feet, and upon her head a crown of twelve stars (the Crown of
Israel - one star per tribe):
12:2 And she being with child cried, travailing in
birth, and pained to be delivered (John 16:21).
12:3 And there appeared another wonder in heaven;
and behold a great red dragon, having seven heads and ten horns, and seven
crowns upon his heads.
12:4 And his tale (of lies - John 8:35) drew the third
part of the "Stars" (ch. 9:1) of heaven (into his army), and did (cause
them to be) cast to the Earth (for their treason against God): and the
dragon stood before the woman which was ready to be delivered, for to devour
her child as soon as it was born (Christ - second coming).
12:5 And she brought forth a Man child, who was to
rule all nations with a rod of iron: and her child was caught up unto God,
and [to] His Throne.
12:6 And the woman fled into the wilderness, where
she hath a place prepared of God, that they should feed her there a thousand
two hundred [and] threescore "days".
12:13 And when the dragon saw that he was cast onto the earth, he
persecuted the woman which brought forth the man [child].
12:14 And to the woman (Israel) were given two wings of a great
eagle (Ex. 19:4), that she might fly into the wilderness (Britain), into
her place, where she is nourished for a Time, and Times (2), and half a
Time (1260 "days") (Dan. 12:7), from the face of the serpent.
12:15 And the serpent cast out of his mouth "water" (ch.17:15) as
a flood after the woman, that he might cause her to be carried away (destroyed)
by the flood.
12:16 And the earth helped the woman, and the earth opened her mouth,
and swallowed up the flood which the dragon cast out of his mouth.
12:17 And the dragon was wroth with the woman, and went to make
war with the remnant of her seed, which KEEP the Commandments of God, and
have the Testimony of Christ Jesus (the Bible).
Bible references taken from "The King of kings'
Bible".
III ñ The term goyim
The term "Goyim," meaning Gentile or non-Jews, is used
throughout the Protocols and is retained by Mr. Marsden.
PROTOCOL 1
THE BASIC DOCTRINE
Right lies in Might ñ Politics versus Morals ñ
The End justifies the Means ñ "Liberty, Equality, Fraternity" ñ The New
Aristocracy.
1. Putting aside fine phrases we shall speak of the significance
of each thought: by comparisons and deductions we shall throw light upon
surrounding facts.
2. What I am about to set forth, then, is our system from
the two points of view, that of ourselves and that of the goyim [i.e.,
non- Jews].
3. It must be noted that men with bad instincts are more
in number than the good, and therefore the best results in governing them
are attained by violence and terrorisation, and not by academic discussions.
Every man aims at power, everyone would like to become a dictator if only
he could, and rare indeed are the men who would not be willing to sacrifice
the welfare of all for the sake of securing their own welfare.
4. What has restrained the beasts of prey who are called
men? What has served for their guidance hitherto?
5. In the beginnings of the structure of society, they
were subjected to brutal and blind force; after words ñ to Law, which is
the same force, only disguised. I draw the conclusion that by the law of
nature right lies in force.
6. Political freedom is an idea but not a fact. This idea
one must know how to apply whenever it appears necessary with this bait
of an idea to attract the masses of the people to one's party for the purpose
of crushing another who is in authority. This task is rendered easier if
the opponent has himself been infected with the idea of freedom, so-called
liberalism, and, for the sake of an idea, is willing to yield some of his
power. It is precisely here that the triumph of our theory appears; the
slackened reins of government are immediately, by the law of life, caught
up and gathered together by a new hand, because the blind might of the
nation cannot for one single day exist without guidance, and the new authority
merely fits into the place of the old already weakened by liberalism.
7. In our day the power which has replaced that of the
rulers who were liberal is the power of Gold. Time was when Faith ruled.
The idea of freedom is impossible of realisation because no one knows how
to use it with moderation. It is enough to hand over a people to self-government
for a certain length of time for that people to be turned into a disorganised
mob. From that moment on we get internecine strife which soon develops
into battles between classes, in the midst of which States burn down and
their importance is reduced to that of a heap of ashes.
8. Whether a State exhausts itself in its own convulsions,
whether its internal discord brings it under the power of external foes
ñ in any case it can be accounted irretrievably lost: it is in our power.
The despotism of Capital, which is entirely in our hands, reaches out to
it a straw that the State, willy-nilly, must take hold of: if not ñ it
goes to the bottom.
9. Should anyone of a liberal mind say that such reflections
as the above are immoral, I would put the following questions: If every
State has two foes and if in regard to the external foe it is allowed and
not considered immoral to use every manner and art of conflict, as for
example to keep the enemy in ignorance of plans of attack and defence,
to attack him by night or in superior numbers, then in what way can the
same means in regard to a worse foe, the destroyer of the structure of
society and the commonweal, be called immoral and not permissible?
10. Is it possible for any sound logical mind to hope
with any success to guide crowds by the aid of reasonable counsels and
arguments, when any objection or contradiction, senseless though it may
be, can be made and when such objection may find more favour with the people,
whose powers of reasoning are superficial? Men in masses and the men of
the masses, being guided solely by petty passions, paltry beliefs, traditions
and sentimental theorems, fall a prey to party dissension, which hinders
any kind of agreement even on the basis of a perfectly reasonable argument.
Every resolution of a crowd depends upon a chance or packed majority, which,
in its ignorance of political secrets, puts forth some ridiculous resolution
that lays in the administration a seed of anarchy.
11. The political has nothing in common with the moral.
The ruler who is governed by the moral is not a skilled politician, and
is therefore unstable on his throne. He who wishes to rule must have recourse
both to cunning and to make-believe. Great national qualities, like frankness
and honesty, are vices in politics, for they bring down rulers from their
thrones more effectively and more certainly than the most powerful enemy.
Such qualities must be the attributes of the kingdoms of the goyim, but
we must in no wise be guided by them.
12. Our right lies in force. The word "right" is an abstract
thought and proved by nothing. The word means no more than: Give me what
I want in order that thereby I may have a proof that I am stronger than
you.
13. Where does right begin? Where does it end?
14. In any State in which there is a bad organisation
of authority, an impersonality of laws and of the rulers who have lost
their personality amid the flood of rights ever multiplying out of liberalism,
I find a new right ñ to attack by the right of the strong, and to scatter
to the winds all existing forces of order and regulation, to reconstruct
all institutions and to become the sovereign lord of those who have left
to us the rights of their power by laying them down voluntarily in their
liberalism.
15. Our power in the present tottering condition of all
forms of power will be more invincible than any other, because it will
remain invisible until the moment when it has gained such strength that
no cunning can any longer undermine it.
16. Out of the temporary evil we are now compelled to
commit will emerge the good of an unshakeable rule, which will restore
the regular course of the machinery of the national life, brought to naught
by liberalism. The result justifies the means. Let us, however, in our
plans, direct our attention not so much to what is good and moral as to
what is necessary and useful.
17. Before us is a plan in which is laid down strategically
the line from which we cannot deviate without running the risk of seeing
the labour of many centuries brought to naught.
18. In order to elaborate satisfactory forms of action
it is necessary to have regard to the rascality, the slackness, the instability
of the mob, its lack of capacity to understand and respect the conditions
of its own life, or its own welfare. It must be understood that the might
of a mob is blind, senseless and un-reasoning force ever at the mercy of
a suggestion from any side. The blind cannot lead the blind without bringing
them into the abyss; consequently, members of the mob, upstarts from the
people even though they should be as a genius for wisdom, yet having no
understanding of the political, cannot come forward as leaders of the mob
without bringing the whole nation to ruin.
19. Only one trained from childhood for independent rule
can have understanding of the words that can be made up of the political
alphabet.
20. A people left to itself, i.e., to upstarts from its
midst, brings itself to ruin by party dissensions excited by the pursuit
of power and honours and the disorders arising therefrom. Is it possible
for the masses of the people calmly and without petty jealousies to form
judgement, to deal with the affairs of the country, which cannot be mixed
up with personal interest? Can they defend themselves from an external
foe? It is unthinkable; for a plan broken up into as many parts as there
are heads in the mob, loses all homogeneity, and thereby becomes unintelligible
and impossible of execution.
21. It is only with a despotic ruler that plans can be
elaborated extensively and clearly in such a way as to distribute the whole
properly among the several parts of the machinery of the State: from this
the conclusion is inevitable that a satisfactory form of government for
any country is one that concentrates in the hands of one responsible person.
Without an absolute despotism there can be no existence for civilisation
which is carried on not by the masses but by their guide, whosoever that
person may be. The mob is savage, and displays its savagery at every opportunity.
The moment the mob seizes freedom in its hands it quickly turns to anarchy,
which in itself is the highest degree of savagery.
22. Behold the alcoholic animals, bemused with drink,
the right to an immoderate use of which comes along with freedom. It is
not for us and ours to walk that road. The peoples of the goyim are bemused
with alcoholic liquors; their youth has grown stupid on classicism and
from early immorality, into which it has been inducted by our special agents
ñ by tutors, lackeys, governesses in the houses of the wealthy, by clerks
and others, by our women in the places of dissipation frequented by the
goyim. In the number of these last I count also the so-called "society
ladies," voluntary followers of the others in corruption and luxury.
23. Our countersign is ñ Force and Make-believe. Only
force conquers in political affairs, especially if it be concealed in the
talents essential to statesmen. Violence must be the principle, and cunning
and make-believe the rule for governments which do not want to lay down
their crowns at the feet of agents of some new power. This evil is the
one and only means to attain the end, the good. Therefore we must not stop
at bribery, deceit and treachery when they should serve towards the attainment
of our end. In politics one must know how to seize the property of others
without hesitation if by it we secure submission and sovereignty.
24. Our State, marching along the path of peaceful conquest,
has the right to replace the horrors of war by less noticeable and more
satisfactory sentences of death, necessary to maintain the terror which
tends to produce blind submission. Just but merciless severity is the greatest
factor of strength in the State: not only for the sake of gain but also
in the name of duty, for the sake of victory, we must keep to the programme
of violence and make-believe. The doctrine of squaring accounts is precisely
as strong as the means of which it makes use. Therefore it is not so much
by the means themselves as by the doctrine of severity that we shall triumph
and bring all governments into subjection to our super-government. It is
enough for them to know that we are too merciless for all disobedience
to cease.
25. Far back in ancient times we were the first to cry
among the masses of the people the words "Liberty, Equality, Fraternity,"
words many times repeated since these days by stupid poll-parrots who,
from all sides around, flew down upon these baits and with them carried
away the well-being of the world, true freedom of the individual, formerly
so well guarded against the pressure of the mob. The would-be wise men
of the goyim, the intellectuals, could not make anything out of the uttered
words in their abstractedness; did not see that in nature there is no equality,
cannot be freedom: that Nature herself has established inequality of minds,
of characters, and capacities, just as immutably as she has established
subordination to her laws: never stopped to think that the mob is a blind
thing, that upstarts elected from among it to bear rule are, in regard
to the political, the same blind men as the mob itself, that the adept,
though he be a fool, can yet rule, whereas the non-adept, even if he were
a genius, understands nothing in the political ñ to all those things the
goyim paid no regard; yet all the time it was based upon these things that
dynastic rule rested: the father passed on to the son a knowledge of the
course of political affairs in such wise that none should know it but members
of the dynasty and none could betray it to the governed. As time went on,
the meaning of the dynastic transference of the true position of affairs
in the political was lost, and this aided the success of our cause.
26. In all corners of the earth the words "Liberty, Equality,
Fraternity," brought to our ranks, thanks to our blind agents, whole legions
who bore our banners with enthusiasm. And all the time these words were
canker-worms at work boring into the well-being of the goyim, putting an
end everywhere to peace, quiet, solidarity and destroying all the foundations
of the goya States. As you will see later, this helped us to our triumph:
it gave us the possibility, among other things, of getting into our hands
the master card ñ the destruction of the privileges, or in other words
of the very existence of the aristocracy of the goyim, that class which
was the only defence peoples and countries had against us. On the ruins
of the eternal and genealogical aristocracy of the goyim we have set up
the aristocracy of our educated class headed by the aristocracy of money.
The qualifications for this aristocracy we have established in wealth,
which is dependent upon us, and in knowledge, for which our learned elders
provide the motive force.
27. Our triumph has been rendered easier by the fact that
in our relations with the men, whom we wanted, we have always worked upon
the most sensitive chords of the human mind, upon the cash account, upon
the cupidity, upon the insatiability for material needs of man; and each
one of these human weaknesses, taken alone, is sufficient to paralyse initiative,
for it hands over the will of men to the disposition of him who has bought
their activities.
28. The abstraction of freedom has enabled us to persuade
the mob in all countries that their government is nothing but the steward
of the people who are the owners of the country, and that the steward may
be replaced like a worn-out glove.
29. It is this possibility of replacing the representatives
of the people which has placed at our disposal, and, as it were, given
us the power of appointment.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 2
ECONOMIC WARS
Routine scientific government ñ Darwinism, Marxism,
Nietzcheism ñ Press-inculcated mentality.
1. It is indispensable for our purpose that wars, so far
as possible, should not result in territorial gains: war will thus be brought
on to the economic ground, where the nations will not fail to perceive
in the assistance we give the strength of our predominance, and this state
of things will put both sides at the mercy of our international agentur;
which possesses millions of eyes ever on the watch and unhampered by any
limitations whatsoever. Our international rights will then wipe out national
rights, in the proper sense of right, and will rule the nations precisely
as the civil law of States rules the relations of their subjects among
themselves.
2. The administrators, whom we shall choose from among
the public, with strict regard to their capacities for servile obedience,
will not be persons trained in the arts of government, and will therefore
easily become pawns in our game in the hands of men of learning and genius
who will be their advisers, specialists bred and reared from early childhood
to rule the affairs of the whole world. As is well known to you, these
specialists of ours have been drawing; to fit them for rule; the information
they need; from our political plans; from the lessons of history; from
observations made of the events of every moment as it passes. The goyim
are not guided by practical use of unprejudiced historical observation,
but by theoretical routine, without any critical regard for consequent
results. We need not, therefore, take any account of them ñ let them amuse
themselves until the hour strikes, or live on hopes of new forms of enterprising
pastime, or on the memories of all they have enjoyed. For them let that
play the principal part which we have persuaded them to accept as the dictates
of science (theory). It is with this object in view that we are constantly,
by means of our press, arousing a blind confidence in these theories. The
intellectuals of the goyim will puff themselves up with their knowledge
and; without any logical verification of them; will put into effect, all
the information available from science, which our agentur specialists have
cunningly pieced together, for the purpose of educating their minds in
the direction we want.
3. Do not suppose for a moment that these statements are
empty words: think carefully of the successes we arranged for Darwinism,
Marxism, Nietzsche-ism. To us Jews, at any rate, it should be plain to
see what a disintegrating importance these directives have had upon the
minds of the goyim.
4. It is indispensable for us to take account of the thoughts;
characters; tendencies of the nations, in order to avoid making slips in
the political and in the direction of administrative affairs. The triumph
of our system, of which the component parts of the machinery may be variously
disposed, according to the temperament of the peoples met on our way, will
fail of success if the practical application of it be not based upon a
summing up of the lessons of the past in the light of the present.
5. In the hands of the States of to-day there is a great
force that creates the movement of thought in the people, and that is the
Press. The part played by the Press is to keep pointing out requirements
supposed to be indispensable, to give voice to the complaints of the people,
to express and to create discontent. It is in the Press that the triumph
of freedom of speech finds its incarnation. But the goyim States have not
known how to make use of this force; and it has fallen into our hands.
Through the Press we have gained the power to influence, while remaining
ourselves in the shade; thanks to the Press we have got the GOLD in our
hands, notwithstanding that we have had to gather it out of the oceans
of blood and tears. But it has paid us, though we have sacrificed many
of our people. Each victim on our side is worth, in the sight of God, a
thousand goyim.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 3
METHODS OF CONQUEST
The Symbolic Snake ñ "People's Rights" ñ Liquidation
of the Goyim ñ "Sovereign Lord of the World" ñ Universal economic crisis
ñ "Ours they will not touchÖ" ñ Secret masonic agents.
1. To-day I may tell you that our goal is now only a few
steps off. There remains a small space to cross and the whole long path
we have trodden is ready now to close its cycle of the Symbolic Snake,
by which we symbolise our people. When this ring closes, all the States
of Europe will be locked in its coil as in a powerful vice.
2. The constitution scales of these days will shortly
break down, for we have established them with a certain lack of accurate
balance in order that they may oscillate incessantly until they wear through
the pivot on which they turn. The goyim are under the impression that they
have welded them sufficiently strong and they have all along kept on expecting
that the scales would come into equilibrium. But the pivots ñ the kings
on their thrones ñ are hemmed in by their representatives, who play the
fool, distraught with their own uncontrolled and irresponsible power. This
power they owe to the terror which has been breathed into the palaces.
As they have no means of getting at their people, into their very midst,
the kings on their thrones are no longer able to come to terms with them
and so strengthen themselves against seekers after power. We have made
a gulf between the far-seeing Sovereign Power and the blind force of the
people so that both have lost all meaning, for like the blind man and his
stick, both are powerless apart.
3. In order to incite seekers after power to a misuse
of power we have set all forces in opposition one to another, breaking
up their liberal tendencies towards independence. To this end we have stirred
up every form of enterprise, we have armed all parties, we have set up
authority as a target for every ambition. Of States we have made gladiatorial
arenas where a lot of confused issues contend....A little more, and disorders
and bankruptcy will be universal....
4. Babblers, inexhaustible, have turned into oratorical
contests the sittings of Parliament and Administrative Boards. Bold journalists
and unscrupulous pamphleteers daily fall upon executive officials. Abuses
of power will put the final touch in preparing all institutions for their
overthrow and everything will fly skyward under the blows of the maddened
mob.
5. All people are chained down to heavy toil by poverty
more firmly than ever. They were chained by slavery and serfdom; from these,
one way and another, they might free themselves. These could be settled
with, but from want they will never get away. We have included in the constitution
such rights as to the masses appear fictitious and not actual rights. All
these so-called "Peoples Rights" can exist only in idea, an idea which
can never be realised in practical life. What is it to the proletariat
labourer, bowed double over his heavy toil, crushed by his lot in life,
if talkers get the right to babble, if journalists get the right to scribble
any nonsense side by side with good stuff, once the proletariat has no
other profit out of the constitution save only those pitiful crumbs which
we fling them from our table in return for their voting in favour of what
we dictate, in favour of the men we place in power, the servants of our
agentur ... Republican rights for a poor man are no more than a bitter
piece of irony, for the necessity he is under of toiling almost all day
gives him no present use of them, but the other hand robs him of all guarantee
of regular and certain earnings by making him dependent on strikes by his
comrades or lockouts by his masters.
6. The people, under our guidance, have annihilated the
aristocracy, who were their one and only defence* and foster-mother for
the sake of their own advantage which is inseparably bound up with the
well-being of the people. Nowadays, with the destruction of the aristocracy,
the people have fallen into the grips of merciless money-grinding scoundrels
who have laid a pitiless and cruel yoke upon the necks of the workers.
* Not true. The Covenant and God's Laws and
Economic Policy in The Torah are the ONLY defence against all abuse
and oppression.
7. We appear on the scene as alleged saviours of the worker
from this oppression when we propose to him to enter the ranks of our fighting
forces ñ Socialists, Anarchists, Communists ñ to whom we always give support
in accordance with an alleged brotherly rule (of the solidarity of all
humanity) of our social masonry (Ezekiel 13:10-16; Matthew 7:23-27). The
aristocracy, which enjoyed by law the labour of the workers, was interested
in seeing that the workers (employees/slaves) were well fed, healthy, and
strong. We are interested in just the opposite ñ in the diminution, the
killing out of the goyim. Our power is in the chronic shortness of food
and physical weakness of the worker because by all that this implies he
is made the slave of our will, and he will not find in his own authorities
either strength or energy to set against our will. Hunger creates the right
of capital to rule the worker more surely than it was given to the aristocracy
by the (* ill-) legal authority of kings (* Deuteronomy 17:14-20).
8. By want and the envy and hatred which it engenders
we shall move the mobs and with their hands we shall wipe out all those
who hinder us on our way.
9. When the hour strikes for our sovereign lord of all
the world to be crowned it is these same hands which will sweep away everything
that might be a hindrance thereto.
10. The goyim have lost the habit of thinking, unless
prompted by the suggestions of our specialists. Therefore they do not see
the urgent necessity of what we, when our kingdom comes, shall adopt at
once, namely this, that it is essential to teach in national schools one
simple, true piece of knowledge, the basis of all knowledge ñ the knowledge
of the structure of human life, of social existence, which requires division
of labour, and, consequently, the division of men into classes and conditions.
It is essential for all to know that owing to difference in the objects
of human activity there cannot be any equality, that he, who by any act
of his compromises a whole class, cannot be equally responsible before
the law with him who affects no one but only his own honour. The true knowledge
of the structure of society, into the secrets of which we do not admit
the goyim, would demonstrate to all men that the positions and work must
be kept within a certain circle, that they may not become a source of human
suffering, arising from an education which does not correspond with the
work which individuals are called upon to do. After a thorough study of
this knowledge, the peoples will voluntarily submit to authority and accept
such position as is appointed them in the State. In the present state of
knowledge and the direction we have given to its development of the people,
blindly believing things in print ñ cherishes ñ thanks to promptings intended
to mislead and to its own ignorance ñ a blind hatred towards all conditions
which it considers above itself, for it has no understanding of the meaning
of class and condition.
11. This hatred will be still further magnified by the
effects of an economic crisis, which will stop dealing on the exchanges
and bring industry to a standstill. We shall create by all the secret subterranean
methods open to us and with the aid of gold, which is all in our hands,
a universal economic crisis whereby we shall throw upon the streets whole
mobs of workers simultaneously in all the countries of Europe. These mobs
will rush delightedly to shed the blood of those whom, in the simplicity
of their ignorance, they have envied from their cradles, and whose property
they will then be able to loot.
12 "Ours" they will not touch, because the moment of attack
will be known to us and we shall take measures to protect our own.
13. We have demonstrated that progress will bring all
the goyim to the sovereignty of reason. Our despotism will be precisely
that; for it will know how, by wise severities, to pacify all unrest, to
cauterise liberalism out of all institutions.
14. When the populace has seen that all sorts of concessions
and indulgences are yielded it, in the same name of freedom it has imagined
itself to be sovereign lord and has stormed its way to power, but, naturally
like every other blind man, it has come upon a host of stumbling blocks.
It has rushed to find a guide (Matthew 15:12-14; 23:23-39), it has never
had the sense to return to the former state (of keeping The Covenant) and
it has laid down its plenipotentiary powers at OUR feet. Remember the French
Revolution, to which it was we who gave the name of "Great": the secrets
of its preparations are well known to us, for it was wholly the work of
our hands.
15 Ever since that time we have been leading the peoples
from one disenchantment to another, so that in the end they should turn
also from us in favour of that king-despot of the blood of Zion, whom we
are preparing for the world.
16. At the present day we are, as an international force,
invincible, because if attacked by some we are supported by other States.
It is the bottomless rascality of the goyim peoples, who crawl on their
bellies to force, but are merciless towards weakness, unsparing to faults
and indulgent to crimes, unwilling to bear the contradictions of a free
social system but patient unto martyrdom under the violence of a bold despotism
ñ it is those qualities which are aiding us to independence. From the premier-dictators
of the present day, the goyim peoples suffer patiently and bear such abuses
as for the least of them they would have beheaded twenty kings.
17. What is the explanation of this phenomenon, this curious
inconsequence of the masses of the peoples in their attitude towards what
would appear to be events of the same order?
18. It is explained by the fact that these dictators whisper
to the peoples through their agents that through these abuses they are
inflicting injury on the States with the highest purpose ñ to secure the
welfare of the peoples, the international brotherhood of them all, their
solidarity and equality of rights. Naturally they do not tell the peoples
that this unification must be accomplished only under our sovereign rule.
19. And thus the people condemn the upright and acquit
the guilty, persuaded ever more and more that it can do whatsoever it wishes.
Thanks to this state of things, the people are destroying every kind of
stability and creating disorders at every step.
20. The word "freedom" brings out the communities of men
to fight against every kind of force, against every kind of authority even
against God and the laws of nature. For this reason we, when we come into
our kingdom, shall have to erase this word from the lexicon of life as
implying a principle of brute force, which turns mobs into bloodthirsty
beasts.
21. These beasts, it is true, fall asleep again every
time when they have drunk their fill of blood, and at such time can easily
be riveted into their chains. But if they be not given blood they will
not sleep and will continue to struggle.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 4
MATERIALISM REPLACES RELIGION
Stages of a Republic ñ Gentile masonry a screen
ñ International speculation of industry ñ Cult of Gold
1. Every republic passes through several stages. The first
of these is comprised in the early days of mad raging by the blind mob,
tossed hither and thither, right and left (Deuteronomy 5:32): the second
is demagogy from which is born anarchy, and that leads inevitably to despotism
ñ not any longer legal and overt, and therefore responsible despotism,
but to unseen and secretly hidden, yet nevertheless sensibly felt despotism
in the hands of some secret organisation or other, whose acts are the more
unscrupulous inasmuch as it works behind a screen, behind the backs of
all sorts of agents, the changing of whom not only does not injuriously
affect, but actually aids the secret force by saving it, thanks to continual
changes, from the necessity of expanding its resources on the rewarding
of long services.
2. Who and what is in a position to overthrow an invisible
force? And this is precisely what our force is. Gentile masonry blindly
serves as a screen for us and our objects, but the plan of action of our
force, even its very abiding-place, remains for the whole people an unknown
mystery.
3. But even freedom might be harmless and have its place
in the State economy; without injury to the well-being of the peoples;
if it rested upon the foundation of faith in God, upon the brotherhood
of humanity, unconnected with the conception of equality, which is negatived
by the very laws of creation, for they have established subordination.
With such a faith as this a people might be governed by a wardship of parishes,
and would walk contentedly and humbly under the guiding hand of its spiritual
pastor, submitting to the dispositions of God upon Earth. This is the reason
why it is indispensable for us to undermine all faith, to tear out of the
mind of the goyim the very principle of Godhead and the spirit (John 3:1-12*),
and to put in its place arithmetical calculations and material needs.
* 3:1 There was a man of the politicians, named Nicodemus,
a ruler of the Jews:
3:2 The same came to Jesus by night, and said unto
him, Rabbi, we know that thou art a teacher come from God: for no man can
do these miracles that thou doest, except God be with him.
3:3 Jesus answered and said unto him, Verily,
verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born from above, he cannot SEE
the Kingdom of God.
3:4 Nicodemus saith unto him, How can a man be born
when he is old? Can he enter the second time into his mother's womb, and
be born?
3:5 Jesus answered, Verily,
verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born of water (human) and then
is born (later) from above as his spirit-"Being" (his REAL self which is
NOT human), he can NOT enter into the Kingdom of God (Who is a Spirit-"Being").
3:6 That which is born of the
flesh is human; and that which is born of the Spirit is spirit (a spirit-"Being")
- (a human+Being).
3:7 Marvel not that I said unto
thee, Ye must be born again.
3:8 The wind bloweth where it
listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence
it cometh, and where it goeth: so is every one that is born of the Spirit.
3:9 Nicodemus answered and said unto him, How can
these things be? (How can I not be human?)
3:10 Jesus answered and said unto him, Art
thou a teacher of Israel, and knowest not these things?
3:11 Verily, verily, I say unto
thee, We speak that we do know, and testify that we have seen; and ye receive
not our witness.
3:12 If I have told you earthly
things, and ye believe not, how shall ye believe, if I tell you [of] heavenly
(spirit) things?
4. In order to give the goyim no time to think and take
note, their minds must be diverted towards industry and trade. Thus, all
the nations will be swallowed up in the pursuit of gain and, in the race
for it, will not take note of their common foe. But again, in order that
freedom may once for all disintegrate and ruin the communities of the goyim,
we must put industry on a speculative basis: the result of this will be
that what is withdrawn from the land by industry will slip through the
hands and pass into speculation, that is, to our classes.
5. The intensified struggle for superiority and shocks
delivered to economic life will create, nay, have already created, disenchanted,
cold and heartless communities (Matthew 24:12). Such communities will foster
a strong aversion towards the higher political and towards religion. Their
only guide is gain, that is Gold, which they will erect into a veritable
cult, for the sake of those material delights which it can give. Then will
the hour strike when, not for the sake of attaining the good, not even
to win wealth, but solely out of hatred towards the privileged, the lower
classes of the goyim will follow our lead against our rivals for power,
the intellectuals of the goyim.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 5
DESPOTISM & MODERN PROGRESS
Centralised Government ñ Gulfs separating States
ñ Sham eloquence to overcome public opinion ñ Super-Government Administration
1. What form of administrative rule can be given to communities
in which corruption has penetrated everywhere, communities where riches
are attained only by the clever surprise tactics of semi-swindling tricks;
where looseness reigns: where morality is maintained by penal measures
and harsh laws but not by voluntarily accepted principles (The Commandments):
where the feelings towards faith and country are obligated by cosmopolitan
convictions? What form of rule is to be given to these communities, if
not that despotism which I shall describe to you later? We shall create
an intensified centralisation of government in order to grip in our hands
all the forces of the community. We shall regulate mechanically all the
actions of the political life of our subjects by new laws. These laws will
withdraw one by one all the indulgences and liberties which have been permitted
by the goyim, and our kingdom will be distinguished by a despotism of such
magnificent proportions as to be at any moment and in every place in a
position to wipe out any goyim who oppose us by deed or word.
2. We shall be told that such a despotism as I speak of
is not consistent with the progress of these days, but I will prove to
you that it is.
3. In the times when the peoples looked upon kings on
their thrones as on a pure manifestation of the will of God, they submitted
without a murmur to the despotic power of kings: but from the day when
we insinuated into their minds the conception of their own rights, they
began to regard the occupants of thrones as mere ordinary mortals. The
holy unction of the Lord's Anointed has fallen from the heads of kings,
in the eyes of the people, and when we also robbed them of their faith
in God, the might of power was flung upon the streets, into the place of
public proprietorship and was seized by us.
4. Moreover, the art of directing masses and individuals
by means of cleverly manipulated theory and verbiage, by regulations of
life in common and all sorts of other quirks, in all which the goyim understand
nothing, belongs likewise to the specialists of our administrative brain.
Reared on analysis, observation, on delicacies of fine calculation, in
this species of skill we have no rivals, any more than we have either in
the drawing up of plans of political actions and solidarity. In this respect
the Jesuits alone might have compared with us, but we have contrived to
discredit them in the eyes of the unthinking mob, as an overt organisation,
while we ourselves all the while have kept our secret organisation in the
shade. However, it is probably all the same to the world who is its sovereign
lord, whether the head of Catholicism or our despot
of the blood of Zion! But to us, the Chosen People*, it is very far from
being a matter of indifference.
* Which they are not:- Revelation 2:9
I
(Christ) know thy works, and tribulation, and poverty, (but thou art rich)
and [I know] the blasphemy of them which say they are Jews, and are NOT,
but [are] (Idumeans) the Synagogue of Satan.
Malachi 1:2 I have loved
you, saith the "I AM". Yet ye say, Wherein hast Thou loved us? [Was] not
Esau Jacob's brother? saith the "I AM": yet I loved Jacob,
1:3 And I hated Esau (Edom) , and
laid his mountains and his heritage waste for the dragons of the wilderness.
1:4 Whereas Edom (Idumeans)
saith, We are impoverished, but we will return and build the desolate places;
thus saith the "I AM" Lord of hosts, They shall build, but I will throw
down; and they shall call them, The border of wickedness, and, The people
against whom the "I AM" hath indignation for ever.
5. For a time perhaps we may be successfully dealt with
by a coalition of the goyim of all the world: but from this danger we are
secured by the discord existing among them whose roots are so deeply seated
that they can never now be plucked up (Matthew 13:24-3, 36-43). We have
set one against another the personal and national reckonings of the goyim,
religious and race hatreds, which we have fostered into a huge growth in
the course of the past twenty centuries. This is the reason why there is
not one State which would anywhere receive support, if it were to raise
its arm, for every one of them must bear in mind that any agreement against
us would be unprofitable to itself. We are too strong ñ there is no evading
our power. The nations cannot come to even an inconsiderable private agreement
without our secretly having a hand in it.
6. Per me reges regnant. "It is through me that kings
reign." And it was said by the prophets that we were chosen by God Himself
to rule over the whole earth. God has endowed us with genius that we may
be equal to our task. Were genius in the opposite camp it would still struggle
against us, but even so, a newcomer is no match for the old-established
settler: the struggle would be merciless between us, such a fight as the
world has never seen (Daniel 12:1-3; Matthew 24:21-27). Aye, and the genius
on their side would have arrived too late. All the wheels of the machinery
of all States go by the force of the engine, which is in our hands, and
that engine of the machinery of States is ñ Gold. The science of political
economy invented by our learned elders has for long past been giving royal
prestige to capital.
7. Capital, if it is to co-operate untrammelled, must
be free to establish a monopoly of industry and trade: this is already
being put in execution by an unseen hand in all quarters of the world.
This freedom will give political force to those engaged in industry, and
that will help to oppress the people. Nowadays it is more important to
disarm* the peoples than to lead them into war: more important to use for
our advantage the passions which have burst into flames than to quench
their fire: more important to eradicate them. The principle object of our
directorate consists in this: to debilitate the public mind by criticism;
to lead it away from serious reflections calculated to arouse resistance;
to distract the forces of the mind towards a sham fight of empty eloquence.
* Luke 11:21 When a strong man ARMED
keepeth his castle, his goods are in peace:
11:22 But when a stronger than
he shall come upon him, and overcome him, he taketh from him all his weapons
wherein he trusted, and divideth his spoils.
11:23 He
that is not WITH me is AGAINST me: and he that gathereth not with me scattereth.
8. In all ages the people of the world, equally with individuals,
have accepted words for deeds, for they are content with a show and rarely
pause to note, in the public arena, whether promises are followed by performance.
Therefore we shall establish show institutions which will give eloquent
proof of their benefit to progress.
9. We shall assume to ourselves the liberal physiognomy
of all parties, of all directions, and we shall give that physiognomy a
voice in orators who will speak so much that they will exhaust the patience
of their hearers and produce an abhorrence of oratory.
10. In order to put public opinion into our hands we must
bring it into a state of bewilderment, by giving expression, from all sides,
to so many contradictory opinions and for such a length of time as will
suffice to make the goyim lose their heads in the labyrinth and come to
see that the best thing is to have no opinion of any kind in matters political,
which it is not given to the public to understand, because they are understood
only by him who guides the public. This is the first secret.
11. The second secret requisite for the success of our
government is comprised in the following: To multiply to such an extent;
national failings; habits; passions; conditions of civil life; that it
will be impossible for anyone to know where he is in the resulting chaos,
so that the people in consequence will fail to understand one another.
This measure will also serve us in another way, namely, to sow discord
in all parties, to dislocate all collective forces which are still unwilling
to submit to us, and to discourage any kind of personal initiative which
might in any degree hinder our affair. There is nothing more dangerous
than personal initiative: if it has genius behind it, such initiative can
do more than can be done by millions of people among whom we have sown
discord (Matthew 21:21). We must so direct the education of the goyim communities
that, whenever they come upon a matter requiring initiative, they may drop
their hands in despairing impotence. The strain, which results from freedom
of actions, saps the forces, when it meets with the freedom of another.
From this collision arise grave moral shocks, disenchantments, failures.
By all these means we shall so wear down the goyim, that they will be compelled
to offer us international power, of a nature that, by its position, will
enable us, without any violence, gradually to absorb all the state forces
of the world and to form a Super-Government. In place of the rulers of
to-day we shall set up a bogey which will be called the Super-Government
Administration. Its hands will reach out in all directions like nippers
and its organisation will be of such colossal dimensions that it cannot
fail to subdue all the nations of the world.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 6
TAKE-OVER TECHNIQUE
Reservoirs of riches ñ Destruction of goy aristocracy
ñ Vicious circle of rising prices
1. We shall soon begin to establish huge monopolies, reservoirs
of colossal riches, upon which, even large fortunes of the goyim will depend
to such an extent that they will go to the bottom, together with the credit
of the States, on the day after the political smash....
2. You gentlemen here present who are economists, just
strike an estimate of the significance of this combination!...
3. In every possible way we must develop the significance
of our Super-Government by representing it as the Protector and Benefactor
of all those who voluntarily submit to us.
4. The aristocracy of the goyim as a political force,
is dead ñ We need not take it into account; but as landed proprietors they
can still be harmful to us from the fact that they are self-sufficing in
the resources upon which they live. It is essential therefore for us, at
whatever cost, to deprive them of their land. This object will be best
attained by increasing the burdens upon landed property ñ in loading lands
with debts. These measures will check land-holding and keep it in a state
of humble and unconditional submission.
5. The aristocrats of the goyim, being hereditarily incapable
of contenting themselves with little, will rapidly burn up and fizzle out.
6. At the same time we must intensively patronise trade
and industry, but, first and foremost, speculation, the part played by
which is to provide a counterpoise to industry: the absence of speculative
industry will multiply capital in private hands and will serve to restore
agriculture by freeing the land from indebtedness to the land banks. What
we want is that industry should drain off from the land both labour and
capital and, by means of speculation, transfer into our hands all the money
of the world, and thereby throw all the goyim into the ranks of the proletariat.
Then the goyim will bow down before us, if for no other reason but to get
the right to exist.
7. To complete the ruin of the industry of the goyim,
we shall bring; to the assistance of speculation, the luxury which we have
developed among the goyim; that greedy demand for luxury which is swallowing
up everything. We shall raise the rate of wages which, however, will not
bring any advantage to the workers, for, at the same time, we shall produce
a rise in prices of the first necessaries of life, alleging that it arises
from the decline of agriculture and cattle-breeding: we shall further undermine;
artfully and deeply; sources of production, by accustoming the workers
to anarchy and to drunkenness, and, side by side therewith, taking all
measures to extirpate from the face of the earth all the educated forces
of the goyim.
8. In order that the true meaning of things may not strike
the goyim; before the proper time; we shall mask it under an alleged ardent
desire to serve the working classes and the great principles of political
economy, about which, our economic theories are carrying on an energetic
propaganda.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 7
WORLD-WIDE WARS
Encouraging an arms race ñ Universal war to check
goy opposition ñ The guns of America, China and Japan
1. The intensification of armaments, the increase of police
forces ñ are all essential for the completion of the aforementioned plans.
What we have to get at, is that there should be, in all the States of the
world; besides ourselves, only the masses of the proletariat; a few millionaires
devoted to our interests; police and soldiers.
2. Throughout all Europe, and by means of relations with
Europe, in other continents also, we must create ferments; discords and
hostility. Therein we gain a double advantage. In the first place we keep
in check all countries, for they will know that we have the power, whenever
we like, to create disorders or to restore order. All these countries are
accustomed to see in us an indispensable force of coercion. In the second
place, by our intrigues we shall tangle up all the threads which we have
stretched into the cabinets of all States; by means of the political; by
economic treaties, or loan obligations. In order to succeed in this we
must use great cunning and penetration during negotiations and agreements,
but, as regards what is called the "official language," we shall keep to
the opposite tactics and assume the mask of honesty and complacency. In
this way the peoples and governments of the goyim, whom we have taught
to look only at the outside of whatever we present to their notice, will
still continue to accept us as the benefactors and saviours of the human
race.
3. We must be in a position to respond to every act of
opposition; by war with the neighbours of that country which dares to oppose
us: but if these neighbours should also venture to stand collectively together
against us, then we must offer resistance by a universal war.
4. The principal factor of success in the political is
the secrecy of its undertakings: the word should not agree with the deeds
of the diplomat.
5. We must compel the governments of the goyim to take
action in the direction favoured by our widely conceived plan, already
approaching the desired consummation, by what we shall represent as public
opinion, secretly promoted by us through the means of that so-called "Great
Power" ñ the Press which, with few exceptions that may be disregarded,
is already, entirely in our hands.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 8
PROVISIONAL GOVERNMENT
Legal justification for audacity ñ Super-educational
training ñ Control of bankers, industrialists and capitalists
1. We must arm ourselves with all the weapons which our
opponents might employ against us. We must search out; in the very finest
shades of expression and the knotty points of the lexicon of law; justification
for those cases, where we shall have to pronounce judgements that might
appear abnormally audacious and unjust, for it is important that these
resolutions should be set forth, in expressions that shall seem to be the
most exalted moral principles cast into legal form. Our directorate must
surround itself with all these forces of civilisation, among which it will
have to work. It will surround itself with publicists; practical jurists;
administrators; diplomats and, finally, with persons prepared by a special
super-educational training in our special schools. These persons will have
consonance of all the secrets of the social structure, they will know all
the languages that can be made up by political alphabets and words; they
will be made acquainted with the whole underside of human nature, with
all its sensitive chords on which they will have to play. These chords
are the cast of mind of the goyim; their tendencies; short-comings; vices
and qualities; the particularities of classes and conditions. Needless
to say that the talented assistants of authority, of whom I speak, will
be taken not from among the goyim, who are accustomed to perform their
administrative work without giving themselves the trouble to think what
its aim is, and never consider what it is needed for. The administrators
of the goyim sign papers without reading them, and they serve either for
mercenary reasons or from ambition.
2. We shall surround our government with a whole world
of economists. That is the reason why economic sciences form the principal
subject of the teaching given to the Jews. Around us again will be a whole
constellation of bankers; industrialists; capitalists and ñ the main thing
ñ millionaires; because in substance, everything will be settled by the
question of figures.
3. For a time, until there will no longer be any risk
in entrusting responsible posts in our State to our brother-Jews, we shall
put them in the hands of persons whose past and reputation are such that
between them and the people lies an abyss, persons who, in case of disobedience
to our instructions, must face criminal charges or disappear ñ this in
order to make them defend our interests to their last gasp.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 9
RE-EDUCATION
Meaning of anti-semitism ñ Source of the all-engulfing
terror ñ Boosting of false theories
1. In applying our principles, let attention be paid to
the character of the people in whose country you live and act; a general,
identical application of them, until such time as the people shall have
been re-educated to our pattern, cannot have success. But, by approaching
their application cautiously, you will see that not a decade will pass
before the most stubborn character will change and we shall add a new people
to the ranks of those already subdued by us.
2. The words of the liberal, which are in effect the words
of our masonic watchword, namely, "Liberty, Equality, Fraternity," will,
when we come into our kingdom, be changed by us into words no longer of
a watchword, but only an expression of idealism, namely, into "The right
of liberty, the duty of equality, the ideal of brotherhood." That is how
we shall put it, ñ and so we shall catch the bull by the horns ... de facto
we have already wiped-out every kind of rule except our own, although de
jure there still remain a good many of them. Nowadays, if any States raise
a protest against us, it is only pro forma at our discretion and by our
direction, for their anti-semitism is indispensable to us for the management
of our lesser brethren. I will not enter into further explanations, for
this matter has formed the subject of repeated discussions amongst us.
3. For us there are not checks to limit the range of our
activity. Our Super-Government subsists in extra-legal conditions, which
are described, in the accepted terminology, by the energetic and forcible
word ñ Dictatorship. I am in a position to tell you, with a clear conscience,
that at the proper time we, the law-givers, shall execute judgement and
sentence, we shall slay and we shall spare, we, as head of all our troops,
are mounted on the steed of the leader. We rule by force of will, because
in our hands are the fragments of a once powerful party, now vanquished
by us. And the weapons in our hands are limitless ambitions; burning greediness;
merciless vengeance; hatreds and malice.
4. It is from us that the all-engulfing terror proceeds.
We have in our service persons of all opinions, of all doctrines; restoring
monarchists; demagogues; socialists; communists and utopian dreamers of
every kind. We have harnessed them all to the task: each one of them, on
his own account, is boring away at the last remnants of authority; is striving
to overthrow all established form of order. By these acts all States are
in torture; they exhort to tranquillity; are ready to sacrifice everything
for peace: but we will not give them peace until they openly acknowledge
our international Super-Government, and with submissiveness.
5. The people have raised a howl about the necessity of
settling the question of Socialism by way of an international agreement.
Division into fractional parties has given them into our hands*, for, in
order to carry on a contested struggle one must have money, and the money
is all in our hands.
* Matthew 12:25 And Jesus knew their thoughts, and
said unto them, Every kingdom divided against
itself is brought to desolation; and every city or house divided against
itself shall not stand:
6. We might have reason to apprehend a union between the
"clear-sighted" force of the goy kings on their thrones and the "blind"
force of the goy mobs, but we have taken all the needful measure against
any such possibility: between the one and the other force we have erected
a bulwark in the shape of a mutual terror between them. In this way the
blind force of the people remains our support and we, and we only, shall
provide them with a leader and, of course, direct them along the road that
leads to our goal.
7. In order that the hand of the blind mob may not free
itself from our guiding hand, we must every now and then enter into close
communion with it, if not actually in person, at any rate through some
of the most trusty of our brethren. When we are acknowledged as the only
authority we shall discuss with the people personally on the market-places,
and we shall instruct them on questings of the political in such wise as
may turn them in the direction that suits us.
8. Who is going to verify what is taught in the village
schools? But, what an envoy of the government, or a king on his throne
himself may say, cannot but become immediately known to the whole State,
for it will be spread abroad by the voice of the people.
9. In order to annihilate the institutions of the goyim,
before it is time, we have touched them with craft and delicacy, and have
taken hold of the ends of the springs which move their mechanism. These
springs lay in a strict but just sense of order; we have replaced them
by the chaotic license of liberalism. We have got our hands into the administration
of the law; into the conduct of elections; into the press; into liberty
of the person; but principally into education and training as being the
cornerstones of a free existence.
10. We have fooled, bemused and corrupted the youth of
the goyim, by rearing them in principles and theories which are known to
us to be false, although it is by us they have been inculcated.
11. Above the existing laws; without substantially altering
them, and by merely twisting them into contradictions of interpretations;
we have erected something grandiose in the way of results. These results
found expression in the fact that the INTERPRETATIONS MASKED THE LAW: afterwards
they entirely hid them from the eyes of the governments; owing to the impossibility
of making anything out of the tangled web of legislation.
12. This is the origin of the theory of course of arbitration.
13. You may say that the goyim will rise upon us, arms
in hand, if they guess what is going on before the time comes; but in the
West we have against this a manoeuvre of such appalling terror that the
very stoutest hearts quail ñ the undergrounds, metropolitans, those subterranean
corridors which, before the time comes, will be driven under all the capitals
and from whence those capitals will be blown into the air with all their
organisations and archives.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 10
PREPARING FOR POWER
Camouflaged political freedom ñ Universal suffrage
ñ The rise of republics ñ Transition to masonic despotism ñ Proclamation
of the "Lord of all the World" ñ Inoculation of diseases
1. To-day I begin with a repetition of what I said before,
and I beg you to bear in mind that governments and people are content,
in the political, with outside appearances. And how, indeed, are the goyim
to perceive the underlying meaning of things, when their representatives
give the best of their energies to enjoying themselves? For our policy,
it is of the greatest importance to take cognisance of this detail; it
will be of assistance to us, when we come to consider the division of authority
of property; of the dwelling; of taxation (the idea of concealed taxes);
of the reflex force of the laws. All these questions are such as ought
not to be touched upon directly and openly before the people. In cases
where it is indispensable to touch upon them, they must not be categorically
named; it must merely be declared, without detailed exposition, that the
principles of contemporary law are acknowledged by us. The reason; of keeping
silence in this respect; is that, by not naming a principle, we leave ourselves
freedom of action, to drop this or that out of it, without attracting notice;
if they were all categorically named, they would all appear to have been
already given.
2. The mob cherishes a special affection and respect for
the geniuses of political power and accepts all their deeds of violence
with the admiring response: "rascally, well, yes, it is rascally, but it's
clever!...a trick, if you like, but how craftily played, how magnificently
done, what impudent audacity!".Ö
3. We count upon attracting all nations to the task of
erecting the new fundamental structure, the project for which has been
drawn up by us. This is why, before everything, it is indispensable for
us to arm ourselves and to store up, in ourselves, that absolutely reckless
audacity and irresistible might of the spirit which; in the person of our
active workers; will break down all hindrances on our way.
4. When we have accomplished our coup d'etat we shall
say then to the various peoples: "Everything has gone terribly badly, all
have been worn out with sufferings. We are destroying the causes of your
torment ñ nationalities; frontiers; differences of coinages. You are at
liberty, of course, to pronounce sentence upon us, but can it possibly
be a just one, if it is confirmed by you, before you make any trial of
what we are offering you."Ö.Then will the mob exalt us and bear us up in
their hands in a unanimous triumph of hopes and expectations. Voting; which
we have made the instrument which will set us on the throne of the world,
by teaching even the very smallest units of members of the human race to
vote, by means of meetings and agreements by groups; will then have served
its purposes and will play its part then, for the last time, by a unanimity
of desire to make close acquaintances with us before condemning us.
5. To secure this we must have everybody vote without
distinction of classes and qualifications, in order to establish an absolute
majority, which cannot be got from the educated propertied classes. In
this way, by inculcating in all a sense of self-importance, we shall destroy
among the goyim the importance of the family and its educational value
and remove the possibility of individual minds splitting off, for the mob,
handled by us, will not let them come to the front, nor even give them
a hearing; it is accustomed to listen only to us who pay it for obedience
and attention. In this way we shall create a blind, mighty force, which
will never be in a position to move in any direction, without the guidance
of our agents, set at its head, by us, as leaders of the mob. The people
will submit to this regime, because it will know, that upon these leaders
will depend its earnings, gratifications and the receipt of all kinds of
benefits.
6. A scheme of government should come ready made from
one brain, because it will never be clinched firmly if it is allowed to
be split into fractional parts in the minds of many. It is allowable, therefore,
for us to have cognisance of the scheme of action but not to discuss it,
lest we disturb its artfulness; the interdependence of its component parts;
the practical force of the secret meaning of each clause. To discuss and
make alterations in a labour of this kind, by means of numerous votings,
is to impress upon it the stamp of all reasoning and misunderstandings
which have failed to penetrate the depth and extent of its plottings. We
want our schemes to be forcible and suitably concocted. Therefore we ought
not to fling the work of genius of our guide to the fangs of the mob, or
even to a select company.
7. These schemes will not turn existing institutions upside
down just yet. They will only effect changes in their economy and consequently
in the whole combined movement of their progress, which will thus be directed
along the paths laid down in our schemes.
8. Under various names there exists, in all countries,
approximately one and the same thing: Representation; Ministry; Senate;
State Council; Legislative and Executive Corps. I need not explain to you
the mechanism of the relation of these institutions to one another, because
you are aware of all that; only take note of the fact that each of the
above-named institutions corresponds to some important function of the
State, and I would beg you to remark that the word "important" I apply
not to the institution but to the function, consequently it is not the
institutions which are important but their functions. These institutions
have divided up among themselves all the functions of government ñ administrative;
legislative; executive; wherefore they have come to operate as do the organs
in the human body. If we injure one part in the machinery of State, the
State falls sick, like a human body, and ...will die.
9. When we introduced into the State organism the poison
of Liberalism its whole political complexion underwent a change. States
have been seized with a mortal illness ñ blood poisoning. All that remains
is to await the end of their death agony.
10. Liberalism produced Constitutional States, which took
the place of what was the only safeguard of the goyim, namely, Despotism;
and a constitution , as you well know, is nothing else but a school of
discords, misunderstandings, quarrels, disagreements, fruitless party agitations,
party whims ñ in a word, a school of everything that serves to destroy
the personality of State activity. The tribune of the "talkeries" has;
no less effectively than the Press; condemned the rulers to inactivity
and impotence, and thereby rendered them useless and superfluous, for which
reason indeed they have been, in many countries, deposed. Then it was that
the era of republics became a possibility that could be realised, and then
it was that we replaced the ruler by a caricature of a government ñ by
a president, taken from the mob, from the midst of our puppet creatures,
or slaves. This was the foundation of the mine which we have laid under
the goy people, I should rather say, under the goy peoples.
11. In the near future we shall establish the responsibility
of presidents.
12. By that time, we shall be in a position to disregard
forms, in carrying through matters for which our impersonal puppet will
be responsible. What do we care if the ranks of those striving for power
should be thinned, if there should arise a deadlock from the impossibility
of finding presidents, a deadlock which will finally disorganise the country?
....
13. In order that our scheme may produce this result we
shall arrange elections in favour of such presidents as have in their past
some dark, undiscovered stain, some "Panama" or other ñ then they will
be trustworthy agents for the accomplishment of our plans, out of fear
of revelations and from the natural desire of everyone who has attained
power, namely, the retention of the privileges, advantages and honour connected
with the office of president. The chamber of deputies will provide cover
for, will protect, will elect presidents, but we shall take from it the
right to propose new, or make changes in existing laws, for this right
will be given by us to the responsible president, a puppet in our hands.
Naturally, the authority of the presidents will then become a target for
every possible form of attack, but we shall provide him with a means of
self-defence in the right of an appeal to the people, for the decision
of the people over the heads of their representatives, that is to say,
an appeal to that some blind slave of ours ñ the majority of the mob. Independently
of this we shall invest the president with the right of declaring a state
of war. We shall justify this last right on the ground that the president
as chief of the whole army of the country must have it at his disposal,
in case of need for the defence of the new republican constitution, the
right to defend which will belong to him as the responsible representative
of this constitution.
14. It is easy to understand, that; in these conditions;
the key of the shrine will lie in our hands, and no one outside ourselves
will any longer direct the force of legislation.
15. Besides this we shall, with the introduction of the
new republican constitution, take from the Chamber the right of interpolation
on government measures, on the pretext of preserving political secrecy,
and, further, we shall, by the new constitution, reduce the number of representatives
to a minimum, thereby proportionately reducing political passions and the
passion for politics. If, however, they should, which is hardly to be expected,
burst into flame, even in this minimum, we shall nullify them by a stirring
appeal and a reference to the majority of the whole people....Upon the
president will depend the appointment of presidents and vice-presidents
of the Chamber and the Senate. Instead of constant sessions of Parliaments
we shall reduce their sittings to a few months. Moreover, the president,
as chief of the executive power, will have the right to summon and dissolve
Parliament, and, in the latter case, to prolong the time for the appointment
of a new parliamentary assembly. But, in order that the consequences of
all these acts; which in substance are illegal; should not; prematurely
for our plans; fall upon the responsibility, established by us, of the
president: we shall instigate ministers and other officials of the higher
administration about the president to evade his dispositions, by taking
measures of their own, for doing which they will be made the scapegoats
in his place....This part we especially recommend to be given to be played
by the Senate; the Council of State; or the Council of Ministers; but not
to an individual official.
16. The president will, at our discretion, interpret the
sense of such of the existing laws as admit of various interpretation;
he will further annul them when we indicate to him the necessity to do
so, besides this, he will have the right to propose temporary laws, and
even new departures in the government constitutional working, the pretext,
both for the one and the other, being the requirements for the supreme
welfare of the State.
17. By such measure we shall obtain the power of destroying,
little by little, step by step, all; that at the outset, when we enter
on our rights, we are compelled to introduce into the constitutions of
States; to prepare for the transition to an imperceptible abolition of
every kind of constitution, and then the time is come to turn every form
of government into our despotism.
18. The recognition of our despot may also come before
the destruction of the constitution; the moment for this recognition will
come when the peoples, utterly wearied by the irregularities and incompetence
ñ a matter which we shall arrange for ñ of their rulers, will clamour:
"Away with them and give us one king over all the Earth who will unite
us and annihilate the causes of disorders ñ frontiers; nationalities; religions;
State debts ñ who will give us peace and quiet which we cannot find under
our rulers and representatives."
19. But you yourselves know perfectly well, that to produce
the possibility of the expression of such wishes, by all the nations, it
is indispensable, to trouble, in all countries, the people's relations
with their governments, so as to utterly exhaust humanity with dissension;
hatred; struggle; envy and even by the use of torture; by starvation; by
the inoculation of disease; by want, so that the goyim see no other course
open to them than to take refuge in our complete sovereignty in money and
in all else.
20. But if we give the nations of the world a breathing-space
the moment we long for is hardly likely ever to arrive.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 11
THE TOTALITARIAN STATE
The new constitution ñ Abolition of the rights
of man ñ "Show" army of masonic lodges
1. The State Council has been, as it were, the emphatic
expression of the authority of the ruler: it will be, as the "show" part
of the Legislative Corps, what may be called the editorial committee of
the laws and decrees of the ruler.
2. This, then, is the program of the new constitution.
We shall make Law, Right and Justice (1) in the guise of proposals to the
Legislative Corps; (2) by decrees of the president under the guise of general
regulations, of orders of the Senate and of resolutions of the State Council
in the guise of ministerial orders; (3) and in case a suitable occasion
should arise ñ in the form of a revolution in the State.
3. Having established approximately the modus agendi,
we will occupy ourselves with details of those combinations by which we
have still to complete the revolution in the course of the machinery of
State in the direction already indicated. By 'those combinations', I mean
the freedom of the Press; the right of association; freedom of conscience;
the voting principle; and many another that must disappear for ever from
the memory of man, or undergo a radical alteration the day after the promulgation
of the new constitution. It is only at the moment that we shall be able
at once to announce all our orders, for, afterwards, every noticeable alteration
will be dangerous, for the following reasons: if this alteration be brought
in with harsh severity and in a sense of severity and limitations, it may
lead to a feeling of despair caused by fear of new alterations in the same
direction; if, on the other hand, it be brought in a sense of further indulgences
it will be said that we have recognised our own wrong-doing and this will
destroy the prestige of the infallibility of our authority, or else it
will be said that we have become alarmed and are compelled to show a yielding
disposition, for which we shall get no thanks because it will be supposed
to be compulsory ... Both the one and the other are injurious to the prestige
of the new constitution. What we want is that from the first moment of
its promulgation, while the peoples of the world are still stunned by the
accomplished fact of the revolution, still in a condition of terror and
uncertainty, they should recognise once and for all that we are so strong,
so inexpugnable, so super-abundantly filled with power, that in no case
shall we take any account of them, and so far from paying any attention
to their opinions or wishes, we are ready and able to crush with irresistible
power all expression or manifestation thereof at every moment and in every
place, that we have seized at once everything we wanted and shall in no
case divide our power with them ... Then in fear and trembling they will
close their eyes to everything, and be content to await what will be the
end of it all.
4. The goyim are a flock of sheep, and we are their wolves.
And you know what happens when the wolves get hold of the flock?....
5. There is another reason also why they will close their
eyes: for we shall keep promising them to give back all the liberties we
have taken away as soon as we have quelled the enemies of peace and tamed
all parties...
6. It is not worth to say anything about how long a time
they will be kept waiting for this return of their liberties...
7. For what purpose then have we invented this whole policy
and insinuated it into the minds of the goy, without giving them any chance
to examine its underlying meaning? For what, indeed, if not in order to
obtain, in a roundabout way, what is, for our scattered tribe, unattainable
by the direct road? It is this which has served as the basis for our organisation
of secret Masonry which is not known to, and aims which are not even so
much as suspected by these goy cattle, attracted by us to the "show" army
of Masonic Lodges, in order to throw dust in the eyes of their fellows.
8. God has granted to us, His Chosen People*, the gift
of the dispersion, and in this which appears in all eyes to be our weakness,
has come forth all our strength, which has now brought us to the threshold
of sovereignty over all the world.
* Which they are NOT, but are in reality the
Synagogue of Satan, as confirmed by Christ:- Revelation 2:9 I
know thy works, and tribulation, and poverty, (but thou art rich) and [I
know] the blasphemy of them which say they are Jews, and are NOT,
but [are] (Idumeans) the Synagogue of Satan (the serpent).
Malachi 1:2 I have loved
you, saith the "I AM". Yet ye say, Wherein hast Thou loved us? [Was] not
Esau Jacob's brother? saith the "I AM": yet I loved Jacob,
1:3 And I hated Esau (Edom) , and
laid his mountains and his heritage waste for the dragons of the wilderness.
1:4 Whereas Edom (Idumeans)
saith, We are impoverished, but we will return and build the desolate places;
thus saith the "I AM" Lord of hosts, They shall build, but I will throw
down; and they shall call them, The border of wickedness, and, The people
against whom the "I AM" hath indignation for ever.
9. There now remains not much more for us to build up
upon the foundation we have laid.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 12
CONTROL OF THE PRESS
Masonic "freedom" ñ Control of printing and publishing
ñ Vishnu, idol of the Press
1. The word "freedom," which can be interpreted in various
ways, is defined by us as follows -
2. Freedom is the right to do that which the law allows.
This interpretation of the word will at the proper time be of service to
us, because all freedom will thus be in our hands, since the laws will
abolish or create only that which is desirable for us, according to the
aforesaid program.
3. We shall deal with the press in the following way:
what is the part played by the press to-day? It serves to excite and inflame
those passions which are needed for our purpose, or else it serves selfish
ends of parties. It is often vapid; unjust; mendacious; and the majority
of the public have not the slightest idea what ends the press really serves.
We shall saddle and bridle it with a tight curb: we shall do the same also
with all productions of the printing press, for where would be the sense
of getting rid of the attacks of the press if we remain targets for pamphlets
and books? The produce of publicity, which nowadays is a source of heavy
expense owing to the necessity of censoring it, will be turned by us into
a very lucrative source of income to our State: we shall law on it a special
stamp tax and require deposits of caution-money before permitting the establishment
of any organ of the press or of printing offices; these will then have
to guarantee our government against any kind of attack on the part of the
press. For any attempt to attack us, if such still be possible, we shall
inflict fines without mercy. Such measures as stamp tax, deposit of caution-money
and fines secured by these deposits, will bring in a huge income to the
government. It is true that party organs might not spare money for the
sake of publicity, but these we shall shut up at the second attack upon
us. No one shall with impunity lay a finger on the aureole of our government
infallibility. The pretext for stopping any publication will be the alleged
plea that it is agitating the public mind without occasion or justification.
I beg you to note that among those making attacks upon us will also be
organs established by us, but they will attack exclusively points that
we have pre-determined to alter.
4. Not a single announcement will reach the public without
our control. Even now this is already being attained by us inasmuch as
all news items are received by a few agencies, in whose offices they are
focused from all parts of the world. These agencies will then be already
entirely ours and will give publicity only to what we dictate to them.
5. If already now we have contrived to possess ourselves
of the minds of the goy communities to such an extent that they all come
near, looking upon the events of the world through the coloured glasses
of those spectacles we are setting astride their noses; if already now
there is not a single State where there exist for us any barriers to admittance
into what goy stupidity calls State secrets: what will our positions be
then, when we shall be acknowledged supreme lords of the world in the person
of our king of all the world...
6. Let us turn again to the future of the printing press.
Every one desirous of being a publisher, librarian, or printer, will be
obliged to provide himself with the diploma instituted therefore, which,
in case of any fault, will be immediately impounded. With such measures
the instrument of thought will become an educative means in the hands of
our government, which will no longer allow the mass of the nation to be
led astray in by-ways and fantasies about the blessings of progress. Is
there any one of us who does not know that these phantom blessings are
the direct roads to foolish imaginings, which give birth to anarchical
relations of men among themselves and towards authority, because progress,
or rather the idea of progress, has introduced the conception of every
kind of emancipation, but has failed to establish its limits.ÖAll the so-called
liberals are anarchists, if not in fact, at any rate in thought. Every
one of them is hunting after phantoms of freedom, and falling exclusively
into license, that is, into the anarchy of protest for the sake of protest.Ö
7. We turn to the periodical press. We shall impose on
it, as on all printed matter, stamp taxes per sheet and deposits of caution-money,
and books of less than 30 sheets will pay double. We shall reckon them
as pamphlets in order, on the one hand, to reduce the number of magazines,
which are the worst form of printed poison, and, on the other, in order
that this measure may force writers into such lengthy productions that
they will be little read, especially as they will be costly. At the same
time what we shall publish ourselves to influence mental development; in
the direction laid down for our profit; will be cheap and will be read
voraciously. The tax will bring vapid literary ambitions within bounds
and the liability to penalties will make literary men dependent upon us.
And if there should be any found who are desirous of writing against us,
they will not find any person eager to print their productions. Before
accepting any production for publication the publisher or printer will
have to apply to the authorities for permission to do so. Thus we shall
know beforehand of all tricks preparing against us and shall nullify them
by getting ahead with explanations on the subject treated of.
8. Literature and journalism are two of the most important
educative forces, and therefore our government will become proprietor of
the majority of the journals. This will neutralise the injurious influence
of the privately-owned press and will put us in possession of a tremendous
influence upon the public mind....If we give permits for ten journals,
we shall ourselves found thirty, and so on in the same proportion. This,
however, must in no wise be suspected by the public. For which reason all
journals published by us will be of the most opposite, in appearance, tendencies
and opinions, thereby creating confidence in us and bringing over to us
quite unsuspicious opponents, who will thus fall into our trap and be rendered
harmless.
9. In the front rank will stand organs of an official
character. They will always stand guard over our interests, and therefore
their influence will be comparatively insignificant.
10. In the second rank will be the semi-official organs,
whose part it will be to attack the tepid and indifferent.
11. In the third rank we shall set up our own; to all
appearance, off position; which, in at least one of its organs, will present
what looks like the very antipothesis to us. Our real opponents at heart
will accept this simulated opposition as their own and will show us their
cards.
12. All our newspapers will be of all possible complexions
ñ aristocratic, republican, revolutionary, even anarchical ñ for so long,
of course, as the constitution exists....Like the Indian idol "Vishnu"
they will have a hundred hands, and every one of them will have a finger
on any one of the public opinions as required. When a pulse quickens these
hands will lead opinion in the direction of our aims, for an excited patient
loses all power of judgement and easily yields to suggestion. Those fools
who will think they are repeating the opinion of a newspaper of their own
camp will be repeating our opinion or any opinion that seems desirable
for us. In the vain belief that they are following the organ of their party
they will, in fact, follow the flag which we hang out for them.
13. In order to direct our newspaper militia in this sense
we must take special and minute care in organising this matter. Under the
title of central department of the press we shall institute literary gatherings
at which our agents will, without attracting attention, issue the orders
and watchwords of the day. By discussing and controverting, but always
superficially, without touching the essence of the matter, our organs will
carry on a sham fight fusillade with the official newspapers solely for
the purpose of giving occasion for us to express ourselves more fully than
could well be done from the outset in official announcements, whenever,
of course, that is to our advantage.
14. These attacks upon us will also serve another purpose,
namely, that our subjects will be convinced of the existence of full freedom
of speech and so give our agents an occasion to affirm that all organs
which oppose us are empty babblers, since they are incapable of finding
any substantial objections to our orders.
15. Methods of organisation like these, imperceptible
to the public eye but absolutely sure, are the best calculated to succeed
in bringing the attention and the confidence of the public to the side
of our government. Thanks to such methods we shall be in a position, as
from time to time may be required, to excite or to tranquillise the public
mind on political questions, to persuade or to confuse, printing now truth,
now lies, facts or their contradictions, according as they may be well
or ill received, always very cautiously feeling our ground before stepping
upon it....We shall have a sure triumph over our opponents; since they
will not have at their disposition organs of the press in which they can
give full and final expression to their views; owing to the aforesaid methods
of dealing with the press. We shall not even need to refute them except
very superficially.
16. Trial shots like these, fired by us in the third rank
of our press, in case of need, will be energetically refuted by us in our
semi-official organs.
17. Even nowadays, already, to take only the French press,
there are forms which reveal masonic solidarity in acting on the watchword:
all organs of the press are bound together by professional secrecy; like
the augurs of old, not one of their numbers will give away the secret of
his sources of information, unless it be resolved to make announcement
of them. Not one journalist will venture to betray this secret, for not
one of them is ever admitted to practice literature unless his whole past
has some disgraceful sore or other....These sores would be immediately
revealed. So long as they remain the secret of a few, the prestige of the
journalist attacks the majority of the country ñ the mob follow after him
with enthusiasm.
18. Our calculations are especially extended to the provinces.
It is indispensable for us to inflame there those hopes and impulses with
which we could at any moment fall upon the capital, and we shall represent
to the capitals that these expressions are the independent hopes and impulses
of the provinces. Naturally, the source of them will be always one and
the same ñ ours. We require that, until such a time as we are in the plenitude
of power, the capitals should find themselves stifled by the provincial
opinion of the nations, i.e., of a majority arranged by our agentur. What
we need is that; at the psychological moment; the capitals should not be
in a position to discuss an accomplished fact for the simple reason, if
for no other, that it has been accepted by the public opinion of a majority
in the provinces.
19. When we are in the period of the new regime; prior
to the transition to that of the assumption of our full sovereignty; we
must not admit any revelations by the press of any form of public dishonesty;
it is necessary that the new regime should be thought to have so perfectly
contented everybody that even criminality has disappeared...Cases of the
manifestation of criminality should remain known only to their victims
and to chance witnesses ñ no more.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 13
DISTRACTIONS
Daily bread ñ Recreation centres ñ The unsuspected
plan
1. The need for daily bread forces the goyim to keep silence
and be our humble servants. Agents taken on to our press from among the
goyim will, at our orders, discuss anything which it is inconvenient for
us to issue directly in official documents, and we meanwhile, quietly amid
the din of the discussion so raised, shall simply take and carry through
such measures as we wish and then offer them to the public as an accomplished
fact. No one will dare to demand the abrogation of a matter once settled,
all the more so as it will be represented as an improvement ... And immediately
the press will distract the current of thought towards, new questions,
(have we not trained people always to be seeking something new?). Into
the discussions of these new questions will throw themselves those of the
brainless dispensers of fortunes who are not able even now to understand
that they have not the remotest conception about the matters which they
undertake to discuss. Questions of the political are unattainable for any
save those who have guided it already for many ages, the creators.
2. From all this you will see that, in seeming the opinion
of the mob, we are only facilitating the working of our machinery, and
you may remark that it is not for actions, but for words issued by us on
this or that question, that we seem to seek approval. We are constantly
making public declaration, that we are guided in all our undertakings by
the hope, joined to the conviction, that we are serving the common weal.
3. In order to distract people who may be too troublesome,
from discussions of questions of the political, we are now putting forward
what we allege to be new questions of the political, namely, questions
of industry. In this sphere let them discuss themselves silly! The masses
are agreed to remain inactive, to take a rest from what they suppose to
be political (which we trained them to, in order to use them as a means
of combating the goy governments) only on condition of being found new
employments, in which we are prescribing them something that looks like
the same political object. In order that the masses themselves may not
guess what they are about, we further distract them with amusements; games;
pastimes; passions; people's palacesÖ.Soon we shall begin through the press
to propose competitions in art; in sport of all kinds: these interests
will finally distract their minds from questions in which we should find
ourselves compelled to oppose them. Growing more and more dis-accustomed
to reflect and form any opinions of their own, people will begin to talk
in the same tone as we, because we alone shall be offering them new directions
for thought...of course through such persons as will not be suspected of
solidarity with us.
4. The part played by the liberals, utopian dreamers,
will be finally played out when our government is acknowledged. Till such
time they will continue to do us good service. Therefore we shall continue
to direct their minds to all sorts of vain conceptions of fantastic theories,
new and apparently progressive: for have we not with complete success turned
the brainless heads of the goyim with progress, till there is not among
the goyim one mind able to perceive that under this word (progress) lies
a departure from truth; in all cases where it is not a question of material
inventions; like a fallacious idea, serves to obscure truth; so that none
may know it except us, the Chosen of God*, its guardians.
* Which they are NOT, but are in reality the
Synagogue of Satan, as confirmed by Christ:- Revelation 2:9 I
know thy works, and tribulation, and poverty, (but thou art rich) and [I
know] the blasphemy of them which say they are Jews, and are NOT,
but [are] (Idumeans) the Synagogue of Satan.
Malachi 1:2 I have loved
you, saith the "I AM". Yet ye say, Wherein hast Thou loved us? [Was] not
Esau Jacob's brother? saith the "I AM": yet I loved Jacob,
1:3 And I hated Esau (Edom) , and
laid his mountains and his heritage waste for the dragons of the wilderness.
1:4 Whereas Edom (Idumeans)
saith, We are impoverished, but we will return and build the desolate places;
thus saith the "I AM" Lord of hosts, They shall build, but I will throw
down; and they shall call them, The border of wickedness, and, The people
against whom the "I AM" hath indignation for ever.
5. When we come into our kingdom, our orators will expound
great problems which have turned humanity upside down, in order to bring
it at the end under our beneficent rule.
6. Who will ever suspect then that all these peoples were
stage-managed by us according to a political plan which no one has so much
as guessed at in the course of many centuries?Ö.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 14
ASSAULT ON RELIGION
Destruction of existing religions and substitution
of the religion of Moses ñ A new era of slavery ñ Pornography encouraged
in progressive countries
1. When we come into our kingdom it will be undesirable
for us that there should exist any other religion than ours of the One
God with Whom our destiny is bound up by our position as the Chosen People
and through Whom our same destiny is united with the destinies of the world.
We must therefore sweep away all other forms of belief. If this gives birth
to the atheists whom we see to-day, it will not, being only a transitional
stage, interfere with our views, but will serve as a warning for those
generations which will hearken to our preaching of the religion of Moses,
that, by its stable and thoroughly elaborated system has brought all the
peoples of the world into subjection to us. Therein we shall emphasise
its mystical right, on which, as we shall say, all its educative power
is based....Then at every possible opportunity we shall publish articles
in which we shall make comparisons between our beneficent rule and those
of past ages. The blessing of tranquillity, though it be a tranquillity
forcibly brought about by centuries of agitation, will throw into higher
relief the benefits to which we shall point. The errors of the goyim governments
will be depicted by us in the most vivid hues. We shall implant such an
abhorrence of them that the peoples will prefer tranquillity, in a state
of serfdom, to those rights of vaunted freedom which have tortured humanity
and exhausted the very sources of human existence, sources which have been
exploited by a mob of rascally adventurers who know not what they do....Useless
changes of forms of government, to which we instigated the goyim when we
were undermining their state structures, will have so wearied the peoples
by that time that they will prefer to suffer anything, under us, rather
than run the risk of enduring again all the same agitations and miseries
they have gone through.
2. At the same time we shall not omit to emphasise the
historical mistakes of the goy governments, which have tormented humanity
for so many centuries by their lack of understanding of everything that
constitutes the true good of humanity, in their chase after fantastic schemes
of social blessings, and have never noticed that these schemes kept on
producing a worse and never a better state of the universal relations which
are the basis of human life....
3. The whole force of our principles and methods will
lie in the fact that we shall present them and expound them as a splendid
contrast to the dead and decomposed old order of things in social life.
4. Our philosophers will discuss all the shortcomings
of the various beliefs of the goyim. But no one will ever bring under discussion
our faith from its true point of view since this will be fully learned
by none save ours, who will never dare to betray its secrets.
5. In countries known as progressive and enlightened we
have created a senseless, filthy, abominable literature. For some time,
after our entrance to power, we shall continue to encourage its existence,
in order to provide a telling relief; by contrast; to the speeches, party
program, which will be distributed from exalted quarters of ours....Our
wise men, trained to become leaders of the goyim, will compose speeches;
projects; memoirs; articles; which will be used by us to influence the
minds of the goyim; directing them towards such understanding and forms
of knowledge as have been determined by us.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 15
RUTHLESS SUPPRESSION
Simultaneous world revolution ñ Purpose and direction
of masonry ñ The Chosen People ñ Dogmatic right of the strong ñ The King
of Israel
1. When we at last definitely come into our kingdom by
the aid of coups d'etat prepared everywhere for one and the same day, after
being definitely acknowledged (and not a little time will pass before that
comes about, perhaps even a whole century), we shall make it our task to
see that, against us, such things as plots shall no longer exist. With
this purpose we shall slay without mercy all who take arms (in hand) to
oppose our coming into our kingdom. Every kind of new institution of anything
like a secret society will also be punished with death; those of them which
are now in existence; are known to us; serve us and have served us; we
shall disband and send into exile to continents far removed from Europe.
In this way we shall proceed with those goy masons who know too much; such
of these as we may for some reason spare will be kept in constant fear
of exile. We shall promulgate a law making all former members of secret
societies liable to exile from Europe as the centre of rule.
2. Resolutions of our government will be final, without
appeal.
3. In the goy societies, in which we have planted and
deeply rooted discord and protestantism, the only possible way of restoring
order is to employ merciless measures that prove the direct force of authority:
no regard must be paid to the victims who fall, they suffer for the well-being
of the future. The attainment of that well-being, even at the expense of
sacrifices, is the duty of any kind of government that acknowledges, as
justification for its existence, not only its privileges but also its obligations.
The principal guarantee of stability of rule is to confirm the aureole
of power, and this aureole is attained only by such a majestic inflexibility
of might, as shall carry on its face the emblems of inviolability from
mystical causes ñ from the choice of God. Such was, until recent times,
the Russian autocracy, the one and only serious foe we had in the world,
without counting the Papacy. Bear in mind the example when Italy, drenched
with blood, never touched a hair of the head of Sulla who had poured forth
that blood: Sulla enjoyed an apotheosis for his might in him, but his intrepid
return to Italy ringed him round with inviolability. The people do not
lay a finger on him who hypnotises them by his daring and strength of mind.
4. Meantime, however, until we come into our kingdom,
we shall act in the contrary way: we shall create and multiply free masonic
lodges in all the countries of the world, absorb into them all who may
become or who are prominent in public activity, for these lodges we shall
find our principal intelligence office and means of influence. All these
lodges we shall bring under one central administration, known to us alone
and to all others absolutely unknown, which will be composed of our learned
elders. The lodges will have their representatives who will serve to screen
the above-mentioned administration of masonry and from whom will issue
the watchword and program. In these lodges we shall tie together the knot
which binds together all revolutionary and liberal elements. Their composition
will be made up of all strata of society. The most secret political plots
will be known to us and fall under our guiding hands on the very day of
their conception. Among the members of these lodges will be almost all
the agents of international and national police, since their service is,
for us, irreplaceable, in the respect that the police is in a position
not only to use its own particular measures with the insubordinate, but
also to screen our activities and provide pretexts for discontents, et
cetera.
5. The class of people who most willingly enter into secret
societies are those who live by their wits, careerists, and in general,
people; mostly light-minded; with whom we shall have no difficulty in dealing
and in using to wind-up the mechanism of the machine devised by us. If
this world grows agitated, the meaning of that will be, that which we have
had to stir-up in order to break up its too great solidarity. But if there
should arise in its midst a plot, then at the head of that plot will be
no other than one of our most trusted servants. It is natural that we and
no other should lead masonic activities, for we know whither we are leading;
we know the final goal of every form of activity; whereas the goyim have
knowledge of nothing, not even of the immediate effect of action they put
before themselves; usually, the momentary reckoning of the satisfaction
of their self-opinion, in the accomplishment of their thought; without
even remarking that the very conception never belonged to their initiative,
but to our instigation of their thought....
6. The goyim enter the lodges out of curiosity, or in
the hope by their means to get a nibble at the public pie, and some of
them in order to obtain a hearing before the public for their impracticable
and groundless fantasies: they thirst for the emotion of success and applause,
of which we are remarkably generous. And the reason why we give them this
success is to make use of the high conceit of themselves to which it gives
birth, for that insensibly disposes them to assimilate our suggestions;
without being on their guard against them; in the fullness of their confidence
that it is their own infallibility which is giving utterance to their own
thoughts and that it is impossible for them to borrow those of others....You
cannot imagine to what extent the wisest of the goyim can be brought to
a state of unconscious naivete in the presence of this condition of high
conceit of themselves, and at the same time how easy it is to take the
heart out of them by the slightest ill-success, though it be nothing more
than the stoppage of the applause they had, and to reduce them to a slavish
submission for the sake of winning a renewal of success....By so much as
ours disregard success, if only they can carry through their plans: by
so much the goyim are willing to sacrifice any plans only to have success.
This psychology of theirs materially facilitates for us the task of setting
them in the required direction (Matthew 6:24). These tigers in appearance
have the souls of sheep and the wind blows freely through their heads.
We have set them on the hobby-horse of an idea about the absorption of
individuality by the symbolic unit of collectivism....They have never yet
and they never will have the sense to reflect that this hobby-horse is
a manifest violation of the most important law of nature, which has established
from the very creation of the world one unit unlike another and precisely
for the purpose of instituting individuality....
7. If we have been able to bring them to such a pitch
of stupid blindness is it not a proof, and an amazingly clear proof, of
the degree to which the mind of the goyim is undeveloped in comparison
with our mind? This it is, mainly, which guarantees our success.
8. And how far-seeing were our learned elders in ancient
times, when they said, that to attain a serious end, it behoves not to
stop at any means or to count the victims sacrificed for the sake of that
end....We have not counted the victims of the seed of the goy cattle, though
we have sacrificed many of our own, but for that we have now already given
them such a position on the Earth as they could not even have dreamed of.
The comparatively small numbers of the victims, from the number of ours,
have preserved our nationality from destruction.
9. Death is the inevitable end for all. It is better to
bring that end nearer to those who hinder our affairs than to ourselves,
to the founders of this affair. We execute masons in such wise that none
save the brotherhood can ever have a suspicion of it, not even the victims
themselves of our death-sentence, they all die when required, as if from
a normal kind of illness.....Knowing this, even the brotherhood in its
turn dare not protest. By such methods we have plucked out of the midst
of masonry the very root of protest against our disposition. While preaching
liberalism to the goy we at the same time keep our own people and our agents
in a state of unquestioning submission.
10. Under our influence the execution of the laws of the
goyim has been reduced to a minimum. The prestige of the law has been exploded
by the liberal interpretations introduced into this sphere. In the most
important and fundamental affairs and questions, judges decide as we dictate
to them; see matters in the light wherewith we enfold them for the administration
of the goyim, of course, through persons who are our tools, though we do
not appear to have anything in common with them ñ by newspaper opinion
or by other means....Even senators and the higher administration accept
our counsels. The purely brute mind of the goyim is incapable of use for
analysis and observation, and still more for the foreseeing whither a certain
manner of setting a question may tend.
11. In this difference, in capacity for thought, between
the goyim and ourselves, may be clearly discerned the seal of our position
as the Chosen People and of our higher quality of humanness, in contradistinction
to the brute mind of the goyim. Their eyes are open, but see nothing before
them (Isaiah 42:16-25) and do not invent (unless perhaps, material things).
From this it is plain that nature herself has destined us to guide and
rule the world (Matthew 23:23-38).
12. When comes the time of our overt rule, the time to
manifest its blessing, we shall remake all legislatures, all our laws will
be brief, plain, stable, without any kind of interpretations, so that anyone
will be in a position to know them perfectly. The main feature which will
run right through them is submission to orders, and this principle will
be carried to a grandiose height. Every abuse will then disappear in consequence
of the responsibility of all down to the lowest unit before the higher
authority of the representative of power. Abuses of power subordinate to
this last instance will be so mercilessly punished that none will be found
anxious to try experiments with their own powers. We shall follow up jealously
every action of the administration on which depends the smooth running
of the machinery of the State, for slackness in this produces slackness
everywhere; not a single case of illegality or abuse of power will be left
without exemplary punishment.
13. Concealment of guilt, connivance between those in
the service of the administration ñ all this kind of evil will disappear
after the very first examples of severe punishment. The aureole of our
power demands suitable, that is, cruel, punishments for the slightest infringement,
for the sake of gain, of its supreme prestige. The sufferer, though his
punishment may exceed his fault, will count as a soldier falling on the
administrative field of battle, in the interest of authority; principle
and law, which do not permit that any of those who hold the reins of the
public coach should turn aside from the public highway to their own private
paths. For example: our judges will know that whenever they feel disposed
to plume themselves, on foolish clemency, they are violating the law of
justice which is instituted for the exemplary edification of men by penalties
for lapse and not for display of the spiritual qualities of the judge....Such
qualities it is proper to show in private life, but not in a public square
which is the educational basis of human life.
14. Our legal staff will serve not beyond the age of 55,
firstly because old men more obstinately hold to prejudiced opinions, and
are less capable of submitting to new directions, and secondly because
this will give us the possibility by this measure of securing elasticity
in the changing of staff, which will thus the more easily bend under our
pressure: he who wishes to keep his place will have to give blind obedience
to deserve it. In general, our judges will be elected by us only from among
those who thoroughly understand that the part they have to play is to punish
and apply laws and not to dream about the manifestations of liberalism,
at the expense of the educational scheme of the State, as the goyim in
these days imagine it to be....This method of shuffling the staff will
serve also to explode any collective solidarity of those in the same service
and will bind all to the interests of the government upon which their fate
will depend. The young generation of judges will be trained in certain
views, regarding the inadmissibility of any abuses that might disturb the
established order of our subjects among themselves.
15. In these days the judges of the goyim create indulgences
to every kind of crimes: not having a just understanding of their office,
because the rulers of the present age, in appointing judges to office,
take no care to inculcate in them a sense of duty and consciousness of
the matter which is demanded of them. As a brute beast lets out its young
in search of prey, so do the goyim give to them for what purpose such place
was created. This is the reason why their governments are being ruined,
by their own forces, through the acts of their own administration.
16. Let us borrow from the example of the results of these
actions yet another lesson for our government.
17. We shall root out liberalism from all the important
strategic posts of our government on which depends the training of subordinates
for our State structure. Such posts will fall exclusively to those who
have been trained by us for administrative rule. To the possible objection
that the retirement of old servants will cost the Treasury heavily, I reply,
firstly, they will be provided with some private service, in place of what
they lose, and, secondly, I have to remark that all the money in the world
will be concentrated in our hands, consequently it is not our government
that has to fear expense.
18. Our absolutism will, in all things, be logically consecutive
and therefore, in each one of its decrees, our supreme will be respected
and unquestionably fulfilled: it will ignore all murmurs, all discontents
of every kind and will destroy, to the root, every kind of manifestation
of them in act, by punishment of an exemplary character.
19. We shall abolish the right of cessation, which will
be transferred exclusively to our disposal ñ to the cognisance of him who
rules, for we must not allow the conception, among the people, of a thought
that there could be such a thing as a decision, of judges set up by us,
that is not right. If, however, anything like this should occur, we shall
ourselves cassate (quash) the decision, but inflict therewith such exemplary
punishment on the judge; for lack of understanding of his duty and the
purpose of his appointment; as will prevent a repetition of such cases....I
repeat that it must be born in mind that we shall know every step of our
administration, which only needs to be closely watched for the people to
be content with us, for it has the right to demand; from a good government;
a good official.
20. Our government will have the appearance of a patriarchal
paternal guardianship on the part of the ruler. Our own nation and our
subjects will discern in his person a father caring for their every need;
their every act; their every inter-relation as subjects one with another,
as well as their relations to the ruler. They will then be so thoroughly
imbued with the thought that it is impossible for them to dispense with
this wardship and guidance; if they wish to live in peace and quiet; that
they will acknowledge the autocracy of our ruler, with a devotion bordering
on Apotheosis, especially when they are convinced that those whom we set
up do not put their own in place of authority, but only blindly execute
his dictates. They will be rejoiced that we have regulated everything in
their lives, as is done by wise parents who desire to train children in
the cause of duty and submission. For the peoples of the world, in regard
to the secrets of our polity, are ever, through the ages, only children
under age, precisely as are also their governments.
21. As you see, I found our despotism on right and duty:
the right to compel the execution of duty is the direct obligation of a
government which is a father for its subjects. It has the right of the
strong that it may use it for the benefit of directing humanity towards
that order which is defined by nature, namely, submission. Everything in
the world is in a state of submission, if not to man, then to circumstances
or its own inner character, in all cases, to what is stronger. And so shall
we be this something stronger for the sake of good.
22. We are obliged without hesitation to sacrifice individuals,
who commit a breach of established order, for in the exemplary punishment
of evil lies a great educational problem.
23. When the King of Israel sets upon his sacred head
the crown offered him by Europe he will become patriarch of the world.
The indispensable victims offered by him in consequence of their suitability
will never reach the number of victims offered in the course of centuries
by the mania of magnificence, the emulation between the goy governments.
24. Our King will be in constant communion with the peoples,
making to them, from the tribune, speeches which fame will in that same
hour distribute over all the world.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 16
BRAINWASHING
Emasculation of the Universities ñ Abolition of
freedom of instruction
1. In order to effect the destruction of all collective
forces, except ours, we shall emasculate the first stage of collectivism
ñ the universities, by re-educating them in a new direction. Their officials
and professors will be prepared for their business by detailed secret programmes
of action from which they will not with immunity diverge, not by one iota.
They will be appointed with especial precaution, and will be so placed
as to be wholly dependent on the Government.
2. We shall exclude, from the course of instruction, State
Law, as also all that concerns the political question. These subjects will
be taught to a few dozen of persons chosen for their pre-eminent capacities
from among the number of the initiated. The universities must no longer
send out from their halls, milk sops; concocting plans for a constitution,
like a comedy or a tragedy; busying themselves with questions of policy,
in which even their own fathers never had any power of thought.
3. The ill-guided acquaintance of a large number of persons
with questions of polity, creates utopian dreamers and bad subjects, as
you can see for yourselves from the example of the universal education;
in this direction; of the goyim. We must introduce into their education
all those principles which have so brilliantly broken up their order. But
when we are in power we shall remove every kind of disturbing subject from
the course of education and shall make, out of the youth, obedient children
of authority, loving him who rules as the support and hope of peace and
quiet.
4. Classicism, as also any form of study of ancient history,
in which there are more bad than good examples, we shall replace with the
study of the program of the future. We shall erase from the memory of men
all facts of previous centuries which are undesirable to us, and leave
only those which depict all the errors of the government of the goyim.
The study of practical life; of the obligations of order; of the relations
of people one to another; of avoiding bad and selfish examples, which spread
the infection of evil, and similar questions of an educative nature, will
stand in the forefront of the teaching program; which will be drawn up
on a separate plan for each calling or state of life; in no wise generalising
the teaching. This treatment of the question has special importance.
5. Each state of life must be trained within strict limits,
corresponding to its destination and work in life. The occasional genius
has always managed and will always manage to slip through into other states
of life, but it is the most perfect folly; for the sake of this rare occasional
genius; to let through, into ranks foreign to them, the untalented who
thus rob of their places those who belong to those ranks by birth or employment.
You know yourselves in what all this has ended for the goyim who allowed
this crying absurdity.
6. In order that he who rules may be seated firmly in
the hearts and minds of his subjects, it is necessary, for the time of
his activity, to instruct the whole nation, in the schools and on the market
places, about this meaning and his acts and all his beneficent initiatives.
7. We shall abolish every kind of freedom of instruction.
Learners of all ages have the right to assemble together, with their parents,
in the educational establishments, as it were in a club: during these assemblies,
on holidays, teachers will read what will pass as free lectures on questions
of human relations; of the laws of examples; of the philosophy of new theories
not yet declared to the world. These theories will be raised by us to the
stage of a dogma of faith, as a traditional stage towards our faith. On
the completion of this exposition of our program of action, in the present
and the future, I will read you the principles of these theories.
8. In a word, knowing, by the experience of many centuries,
that people live and are guided by ideas; that these ideas are imbibed
by people only by the aid of education, provided with equal success for
all ages of growth; but of course, by varying methods; we shall swallow
up and confiscate to our own use, the last scintilla of independence of
thought, which we have; for long past; been directing towards subjects
and ideas useful for us. The system of bridling thought is already at work
in the so-called system of teaching by object lessons, the purpose of which
is to turn the goyim into unthinking submissive brutes, waiting for things
to be presented before their eyes in order to form an idea of them....In
France, one of our best agents, Bourgeois, has already made public a new
program of teaching by object lessons.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 17
ABUSE OF AUTHORITY
The demoralisation of Justice ñ Wrecking of the
Christian religion ñ Jewish Patriarch Pope of the universe ñ Secret police
employing public informers
1. The practice of advocacy produces men cold; cruel;
persistent; unprincipled; who in all cases take up an impersonal, purely
legal standpoint. They have the inveterate habit to refer everything to
its value for the defence and not to the public welfare of its results.
They do not usually decline to undertake any defence whatever, they strive
for an acquittal at all costs, cavilling over every petty crux of jurisprudence
and thereby they demoralise justice. For this reason we shall set this
profession into narrow frames which will keep it inside this sphere of
executive public service. Advocates, equally with judges, will be deprived
of the right of communication with litigant; they will receive business
only from the court and will study it by notes of report and documents,
defending their clients after they have been interrogated in court on facts
that have appeared. They will receive an honorarium without regard to the
quality of the defence. This will render them mere reporters on law-business
in the interests of justice and as counterpoise to the proctor who will
be the reporter in the interests of prosecution; this will shorten business
before the courts. In this way will be established a practice of honest
unprejudiced defence conducted not from personal interest but by conviction.
This will also, by the way, remove the present practice of corrupt bargain
between advocates to agree only to let that side win which pays most....
2. We have long past taken care to discredit the priesthood
of goyim, and thereby to ruin their mission on Earth which in these days
might still be a great hindrance to us. Day by day its influence on the
peoples of the world is falling lower. Freedom of conscience has been declared
everywhere, so that now only years divide us from the moment of the complete
wrecking of that Christian religion: as to other religions we shall have
still less difficulty in dealing with them, but it would be premature to
speak of this now. We shall act clericalism and clericals into such narrow
frames as to make their influence move in retrogressive proportion to its
former progress.
3. When the time comes finally to destroy the papal court
the finger of an invisible hand will point the nations towards this court.
When, however, the nations fling themselves upon it, we shall come forward
in the guise of its defenders as if to save excessive bloodshed. By this
diversion we shall penetrate to its very bowels and be sure we shall never
come out again until we have gnawed through the entire strength of this
place.
4. The King of the Jews will be the real Pope
of the Universe, the patriarch of the international Church.
5. But, in the meantime, while we are re-educating youth
in new traditional religions and afterwards in ours, we shall not overtly
lay a finger on existing churches, but we shall fight against them by criticism
calculated to produce schismÖ.
6. In general, then, our contemporary press will continue
to criticise State affairs; religions; incapacities of the goyim; always
using the most unprincipled expressions in order, by every means, to lower
their prestige in the manner which can only be practised by the genius
of our gifted tribe....
7. Our kingdom will be an apologia of the divinity Vishnu,
in whom is found its personification ñ in our hundred hands will be, one
in each, the springs of the machinery of social life. We shall see everything
without the aid of official police which, in that scope of its rights which
we elaborated for the use of the goyim, hinders governments from seeing.
In our programs one-third of our subjects will keep the rest under observation
from a sense of duty, on the principle of volunteer service to the State.
It will then be no disgrace to be a spy and informer, but a merit: unfounded
denunciations, however, will be cruelly punished so that there may be no
development of abuses of this right.
8. Our agents will be taken from the higher as well as
the lower ranks of society, from among the administrative class who spend
their time in amusements; editors; printers and publishers; booksellers;
clerks and salesmen; workmen; coachmen; lackeys; et cetera. This body,
having no rights and not being empowered to take any action on their own
account, and consequently a police without any power, will only witness
and report: verification of their reports and arrests will depend upon
a responsible group of controllers of police affairs, while the actual
act of arrest will be performed by the gendarmerie and the municipal police.
Any person not denouncing anything seen or heard concerning questions of
polity will also be charged with and made responsible for concealment,
if it be proved that he is guilty of this crime.
9. Just as nowadays our brethren are obliged, at their
own risk, to denounce to the kabal; apostates of their own family, or members
who have been noticed doing anything in opposition to the kabal; so, in
our kingdom over all the world, it will be obligatory for all our subjects
to observe the duty of service to the State in this direction.
10. Such an organisation will extirpate abuses of authority;
of force; of bribery; everything in fact which we, by our counsels; by
our theories of the superhuman rights of man; have introduced into the
customs of the goyim....But how else were we to procure that increase of
causes predisposing to disorders in the midst of their administration?....Among
the number of those methods, one of the most important is ñ agents for
the restoration of order, so placed as to have the opportunity, in their
disintegrating activity, of developing and displaying their evil inclinations
ñ obstinate self-conceit, irresponsible exercise of authority, and, first
and foremost, venality.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 18
ARREST OF OPPONENTS
Measures of secret defence ñ Undermining authority
1. When it becomes necessary for us to strengthen the
strict measures of secret defence (the most fatal poison for the prestige
of authority) we shall arrange a simulation of disorders, or some manifestation
of discontents finding expression through the co-operation of good speakers.
Round these speakers will assemble all who are sympathetic to his utterances.
This will give us the pretext for domiciliary perquisitions (diligent searches)
and surveillance on the part of our servants from among the number of the
goyim police....
2. As the majority of conspirators act of love for the
game, for the sake of talking, so, until they commit some overt act we
shall not lay a finger on them, but only introduce into their midst observation
elements....It must be remembered that the prestige of authority is lessened
if it frequently discovers conspiracies against itself: this implies a
presumption of consciousness of weakness, or, what is still worse, of injustice.
You are aware that we have broken the prestige of the goy kings by frequent
attempts upon their lives through our agents, blind sheep of our flock,
who are easily moved by a few liberal phrases, to crimes, provided only
they be painted in political colours. We have compelled the rulers to acknowledge
their weakness in advertising overt measures of secret defence and thereby
we shall bring the promise of authority to destruction.
3. Our ruler will be secretly protected only by the most
insignificant guard, because we shall not admit so much as a thought that
there could exist, against him, any sedition with which he is not strong
enough to contend and is compelled to hide from it.
4. If we should admit this thought, as the goyim have
done and are doing, we should ipso facto be signing a death-sentence, if
not for our ruler, at any rate for his dynasty, at no distant date.
5. According to strictly enforced outward appearances
our ruler will employ his power only for the advantage of the nation and
in no wise for his own or dynastic profits. Therefore, with the observance
of this decorum, his authority will be respected and guarded by the subjects
themselves, it will receive an apotheosis in the admission that with it
is bound up the well-being of every citizen of the State, for upon it will
depend all order in the common life of the pack....
6. Overt defence of this kind argues weakness in the organisation
of his strength.
7. Our ruler will always be among the people and be surrounded
by a mob of apparently curious men and women, who will occupy the front
ranks about him, to all appearance by chance, and will restrain the ranks
of the rest, out of respect, as it will appear for good order. This will
sow an example of restraint also in others. If a petitioner appears among
the people trying to hand a petition and forcing his way through the ranks,
the first ranks must receive the petition and before the eyes of the petitioner
pass it to the ruler, so that all may know that what is handed-in reaches
its destination, that consequently, there exists a control of the ruler
himself. The aureole of power requires for is existence that the people
may be able to say: "If the king knew of this," or: "the king will hear
it."
8. With the establishment of official defence, the mystical
prestige of authority disappears: given a certain audacity, and everyone
counts himself master of it, the sedition-monger is conscious of his strength,
and, when occasion serves, watches for the moment to make an attempt upon
authority....For the goyim we have been preaching something else, but by
that very fact we are enabled to see what measures of overt defence have
brought them to....
9. Criminals with us will be arrested at the first, more
or less, well-grounded suspicion: it cannot be allowed that, out of fear
of a possible mistake, an opportunity should be given of escape to persons
suspected of a political lapse of crime, for, in these matters, we shall
be literally merciless. If it is still possible, by stretching a point,
to admit a reconsideration of the motive causes in simple crimes, there
is no possibility of excuse for persons occupying themselves with questions
in which nobody, except the government, can understand anything....And
it is not all governments that understand true policy.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 19
RULERS AND PEOPLE
Making use of public petitions ñ debasing heroism
ñ Martyrdom of sedition-mongers
1. If we do not permit any independent dabbling in the
political, we shall on the other hand encourage every kind of report or
petition with proposals for the government, to examine into all kinds of
projects for the amelioration of the condition of the people; this will
reveal to us the defects or else the fantasies of our subjects, to which
we shall respond either by accomplishing them or by wisely rebutting them
to prove the short-sightedness of one who judges wrongly.
2. Sedition-mongering is nothing more than the yapping
of a lap-dog at an elephant. For a government well organised, not from
the police but from the public point of view, the lap-dog yaps at the elephant
in entire unconsciousness of its strength and importance. It needs no more
than to take a good example to show the relative importance of both and
the lap-dogs will cease to yap and will wag their tails the moment they
set eyes on an elephant.
3. In order to destroy the prestige of heroism, for political
crime, we shall send it for trial in the category of thieving, murder,
and every kind of abominable and filthy crime. Public opinion will then
confuse; in its conception of this category of crime; with the disgrace
attaching to every other and will brand it with the same contempt.
4. We have done our best, and I hope we have succeeded,
to obtain that the goyim should not arrive at this means of contending
with sedition. It was for this reason that through the Press and in speeches,
indirectly ñ in cleverly-compiled school-books on history, we have advertised
the martyrdom alleged to have been accredited by sedition-mongers for the
idea of the commonweal. This advertisement has increased the contingent
of liberals and has brought thousands of goyim into the ranks of our livestock
cattle.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 20
FINANCIAL PROGRAMME
Progressive taxation ñ Stagnant capital ñ the
ruinous Gold Standard
1. To-day we shall touch upon the financial program, which
I put off to the end of my report as being the most difficult, the crowning
and the decisive point of our plans. Before entering upon it I will remind
you that I have already spoken before, by way of a hint, when I said that
the sum total of our actions is settled by the question of figures.
2. When we come into our kingdom our autocratic government
will avoid, from a principle of self-preservation, sensibly burdening the
masses of the people with taxes, remembering that it (the government) plays
the part of father and protector. But as State organisation costs dear
it is necessary nevertheless to obtain the funds required for it. I will,
therefore, elaborate with particular precaution the question of equilibrium
in this matter.
3. Our rule, in which the king will enjoy the legal fiction
that everything in his State belongs to him (which may easily be translated
into fact), will be enabled to resort to the lawful confiscation of all
sums, of every kind, for the regulation of their circulation in the State.
From this follows that taxation will best be covered by a progressive tax
on property. In this manner the dues will be paid; without straitening
or ruining anybody; in the form of a percentage of the amount of property.
The rich must be aware that it is their duty to place a part of their superfluities
at the disposal of the State, since the State guarantees them security
of possession of the rest of their property and the right of honest gains,
I say honest, for the control over property will do away with robbery on
a legal basis.
4. This social reform must come from above, for the time
is ripe for it ñ it is indispensable as a pledge of peace.
5. The tax upon the poor man is a seed of revolution and
works to the detriment of the State which in hunting after the trifling
is missing the big. Quite apart from this, a tax on capitalists diminishes
the growth of wealth in private hands, in which we have in these days concentrated
it, as a counterpoise to the government strength of the goyim ñ their State
finances.
6. A tax increasing in a percentage ratio to capital will
give much larger revenue than the present individual or property tax, which
is useful to us now for the sole reason that it excites trouble and discontent
among the goyim. (Now we know the purpose of the U.S. 16th Amendment!!).
7. The force, upon which our king will rest, consists
in the equilibrium and the guarantee of peace, for the sake of which things
it is indispensable that the capitalists should yield up a portion of their
incomes, for the sake of the secure working of the machinery of the State.
State needs must be paid by those who will not feel the burden and have
enough to take from.
8. Such a measure will destroy the hatred of the poor
man for the rich, in whom he will see a necessary financial support for
the State; will see in him the organiser of peace and well-being, since
he will see that it is the rich man who is paying the necessary means to
attain these things.
9. In order that payers of the educated classes should
not too much distress themselves over the new payments, they will have
full accounts given them of the destination of those payments, with the
exception of such sums as will be appropriated for the needs of the throne
and the administrative institutions.
10. He who reigns will not have any properties of his
own, once all in the State represents his patrimony, or else the one would
be in contradiction to the other; the fact of holding private means would
destroy the right of property in the common possessions of all.
11. Relatives of him who reigns, his heirs excepted, who
will be maintained by the resources of the State, must enter the ranks
of servants of the State or must work to obtain the right to property;
the privilege of royal blood must not serve for the spoiling of the treasury.
12. Purchase, receipt of money or inheritance will be
subject to the payment of a stamp progressive tax. Any transfer of property,
whether money or other, without evidence of payment of this tax, which
will be strictly registered by names, will render the former holder liable
to pay interest on the tax, from the moment of transfer of these sums,
up to the discovery of his evasion of declaration of the transfer. Transfer
documents must be presented weekly at the local treasury office, with notifications
of the name, surname and permanent place of residence of the former and
the new holder of the property. This transfer with register of names must
begin from a definite sum which exceeds the ordinary expenses of buying
and selling necessaries, and these will be subject to payment only by a
stamp impost of a definite percentage of the unit.
13. Just strike an estimate of how many times such taxes
as these will cover the revenue of the goyim States.
14. The State exchequer will have to maintain a definite
complement of reserve sums, and all that is collected above that complement
must be returned into circulation. On these sums will be organised public
works. The initiative in works of this kind, proceeding from State sources,
will blind the working class firmly to the interests of the State and to
those who reign. From these same sums also a part will be set aside as
rewards of inventiveness and productiveness.
15. On no account should so much as a single unit above
the definite and freely estimated sums be retained in the State Treasuries,
for money exists to be circulated and any kind of stagnation of money acts
ruinously on the running of the State machinery, for which it is the lubricant;
a stagnation of the lubricant may stop the regular working of the mechanism.
16. The substitution of interest-bearing paper for a part
of the token of exchange has produced exactly this stagnation. The consequences
of this circumstance are already sufficiently noticeable.
17. A court of account will also be instituted by us,
and in it the ruler will find at any moment a full accounting for State
income and expenditure, with the exception of the current monthly account,
not yet made up, and that of the preceding month, which will not yet have
been delivered.
18. The one and only person who will have no interest
in robbing the State is its owner, the ruler. This is why his personal
control will remove the possibility of leakages of extravagances.
19. The representative function of the ruler, at receptions,
for the sake of etiquette, which absorbs so much invaluable time, will
be abolished in order that the ruler may have time for control and consideration.
His power will not then be split up into fractional parts among time-serving
favourites who surround the throne for its pomp and splendour, and are
interested only in their own and not in the common interests of the State.
20. Economic crises have been produced by us for the goyim
by no other means than the withdrawal of money from circulation. Huge capitals
have stagnated, withdrawing money from States, which were constantly obliged
to apply to those same stagnant capitals for loans. These loans burdened
the finances of the State with the payment of interest and made them the
bond slaves of these capitals....The concentration of industry in the hands
of capitalists out of the hands of small masters has drained away all the
juices of the peoples and with them also the States.Ö
21. The present issue of money in general does not correspond
with the requirements per head, and cannot therefore satisfy all the needs
of the workers. The issue of money ought to correspond with the growth
of population and thereby children also must absolutely be reckoned as
consumers of currency from the day of their birth. The revision of issue
is a material question for the whole world.
22. You are aware that the gold standard has been the
ruin of the States which adopted it, for it has not been able to satisfy
the demands for money, the more so that we have removed gold from circulation
as possible.
23. With us the standard that must be introduced is the
cost of working-man power, whether it be reckoned in paper or in wood.
We shall make the issue of money in accordance with the normal requirements
of each subject, adding to the quantity with every birth and subtracting
with every death.
24. The accounts will be managed by each department (the
French administrative division), each circle.
25. In order that there may be no delays in the paying
out of money for State needs the sums and terms of such payments will be
fixed by decree of the ruler; this will do away with the protection by
a ministry of one institution to the detriment of others.
26. The budgets of income and expenditure will be carried
out side by side that they may not be obscured by distance one to another.
27. The reforms projected by us in the financial institutions
and principles of the goyim will be clothed by us in such forms as will
alarm nobody. We shall point out the necessity of reforms in consequence
of the disorderly darkness into which the goyim by their irregularities
have plunged the finances. The first irregularity, as we shall point out,
consists in their beginning with drawing up a single budget which year
after year grows owing to the following cause: this budget is dragged out
to half the year, then they demand a budget to put things right, and this
they expend in three months, after which they ask for a supplementary budget,
and all this ends with a liquidation budget. But, as the budget of the
following year is drawn up in accordance with the sum of the total addition,
the annual departure from the normal reaches as much as 50 per cent in
a year, and so the annual budget is trebled in ten years. Thanks to such
methods, allowed by the carelessness of the goy States, their treasuries
are empty. The period of loans supervenes, and that has swallowed up remainders
and brought all the goy States to bankruptcy.
28. You understand perfectly that economic arrangements
of this kind, which have been suggested to the goyim by us, cannot be carried
on by us.
29. Every kind of loan proves infirmity in the State and
a want of understanding of the rights of the State. Loans hang like a sword
of Damocles over the heads of rulers, who, instead of taking from their
subjects by a temporary tax, come begging with outstretched palm of our
bankers. Foreign loans are leeches which there is no possibility of removing
from the body of the State, until they fall off of themselves, or the State
flings them off. But the goy States do not tear them off; they go on in
persisting in putting more on to themselves so that they must inevitably
perish, drained by voluntary blood-letting.
30. What also indeed is, in substance, a loan, especially
a foreign loan? A loan is ñ an issue of government bills of exchange containing
a percentage obligation commensurate to the sum of the loan capital. If
the loan bears a charge of 5 per cent, then in twenty years the State vainly
pays away in interest a sum equal to the loan borrowed, in forty years
it is paying a double sum, in sixty ñ treble, and all the while the debt
remains an unpaid debt.
31. From this calculation it is obvious that, with any
form of taxation per head, the State is baling out the last coppers of
the poor taxpayers in order to settle accounts with wealthy foreigners,
from whom it has borrowed money, instead of collecting these coppers for
its own needs without the additional interest.
32. So long as loans were internal the goyim only shuffled
their money from the pockets of the poor to those of the rich, but when
we bought up the necessary person in order to transfer loans into the external
sphere, all the wealth of States flowed into our cash-boxes and all the
goyim began to pay us the tribute of subjects.
33. If the superficiality of goy kings on their thrones
in regard to State affairs and the venality of ministers, or the want of
understanding of financial matters on the part of other ruling persons,
have made their countries debtors to our treasuries, to amounts quite impossible
to pay, it has not been accomplished without, on our part, heavy expenditure
of trouble and money.
34. Stagnation of money will not be allowed by us and
therefore there will be no State interest-bearing paper, except a one per-cent
series, so that there will be no payment of interest to leeches that suck
all the strength out of the State. The right to issue interest-bearing
paper will be given exclusively to industrial companies who will find no
difficulty in paying interest out of profits, whereas the State does not
make interest on borrowed money like these companies, for the State borrows
to spend and not to use in operations.
35. Industrial papers will be bought also by the government,
which from being, as now, a paper of tribute by loan operations, will be
transformed into a lender of money at a profit. This measure will stop
the stagnation of money, parasitic profits and idleness, all of which were
useful for us among the goyim so long as they were independent but are
not desirable under our rule.
36. How clear is the undeveloped power of thought of the
purely brute brains of the goyim, as expressed in the fact that they have
been borrowing from us, with payment of interest, without ever thinking
that all the same these very moneys, plus an addition for payment of interest,
must be got by them from their own State pockets in order to settle up
with us. What could have been simpler than to take the money they wanted
from their own people?
37. But it is a proof of the genius of our chosen mind
that we have contrived to present the matter of loans to them in such a
light that they have even seen in them an advantage for themselves.
38. Our accounts, which we shall present when the time
comes, in the light of centuries of experience gained by experiments made
by us on the goy States, will be distinguished by clearness and definiteness
and will show at a glance to all men the advantage of our innovations.
They will put an end to those abuses to which we owe our mastery over the
goyim, but which cannot be allowed in our kingdom.
39. We shall so hedge about our system of accounting that
neither the ruler nor the most insignificant public servant will be in
a position to divert even the smallest sum from its destination without
detection or to direct it in another direction except that which will be
once fixed in a definite plan of action.
40. And without a definite plan it is impossible to rule.
Marching along an undetermined road and with undetermined resources brings
to ruin by the way heroes and demi-gods.
41. The goy rulers, whom we once upon a time advised should
be distracted from State occupations by representative receptions, observances
of etiquette, entertainments, were only screens for our rule. The accounts
of favourite courtiers who replaced them in the sphere of affairs were
drawn up for them by our agents, and every time gave satisfaction to short-sighted
minds by promises that in the future economics and improvements were foreseen....Economics
from what? From new taxes? ñ were questions that might have been but were
not asked by those who read our accounts and projects.
42. You know to what they have been brought by this carelessness,
to what pitch of financial disorder they have arrived, notwithstanding
the astonishing industry of their peoples....
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 21
LOANS AND CREDIT
Bankruptcy ñ Abolition of money markets
1. To what I reported to you at the last meeting I shall
now add a detailed explanation of internal loans. Of foreign loans I shall
say nothing more, because they have fed us with national moneys of the
goyim, but for our State there will be no foreigners, that is, nothing
external.
2. We have taken advantage of the venality of administrators
and slackness of rulers to get our moneys twice, thrice and more times
over, by lending to the goy governments moneys which were not at all needed
by the States. Could anyone do the like in regard to us....Therefore, I
shall only deal with the details of internal loans.
3. States announce that such a loan is to be concluded
and open subscriptions for their own bills of exchange, that is, for their
interest-bearing paper. That they may be within the reach of all the price
is determined at from a hundred to a thousand; and a discount is made for
the earliest subscribers. Next day by artificial means the price of them
goes up, the alleged reason being that everyone is rushing to buy them.
In a few days the treasury safes are as they say overflowing and there's
more money than they can do with (why then take it?). The subscription,
it is alleged, covers many times over the issue total of the loan; in this
lies the whole stage effect ñ look you, they say, what confidence is shown
in the government's bills of exchange.
4. But when the comedy is played out there emerges the
fact that a debit and an exceedingly burdensome debit has been created.
For the payment of interest it becomes necessary to have recourse to new
loans, which do not swallow up but only add to the capital debt. And when
this credit is exhausted it becomes necessary by new taxes to cover, not
the loan, but only the interest on it. These taxes are a debit employed
to cover a debit....
5. Later comes the time for conversions, but they diminish
the payment of interest without covering the debt, and besides they cannot
be made without the consent of the lenders; on announcing a conversion,
a proposal is made to return the money to those who are not willing to
convert their paper. If everybody expressed his unwillingness and demanded
his money back, the government would be hooked on their own files and would
be found insolvent and unable to pay the proposed sums. By good luck the
subjects of the goy governments, knowing nothing about financial affairs,
have always preferred losses on exchange and diminution of interest to
the risk of new investments of their moneys, and have thereby many a time
enabled these governments to throw off their shoulders a debit of several
millions.
6. Nowadays, with external loans, these tricks cannot
be played by the goyim for they know that we shall demand all our moneys
back.
7. In this way in acknowledged bankruptcy will best prove
to the various countries the absence of any means between the interest
of the peoples and of those who rule them.
8. I beg you to concentrate your particular attention
upon this point and upon the following: nowadays all internal loans are
consolidated by so-called flying loans, that is, such as have terms of
payment more or less near. These debts consist of moneys paid into the
savings banks and reserve funds. If left for long at the disposition of
a government these funds evaporate in the payment of interest on foreign
loans, and are placed by the deposit of equivalent amount of rents.
9. And these last it is which patch up all the leaks in
the State treasuries of the goyim.
10. When we ascend the throne of the world all these financial
and similar shifts, as being not in accord with our interests, will be
swept away so as not to leave a trace, as also will be destroyed all money
markets, since we shall not allow the prestige of our power to be shaken
by fluctuations of prices set upon our values, which we shall announce
by law at the price which represents their full worth without any possibility
of lowering or raising. (Raising gives the pretext for lowering, which
indeed was where we made a beginning in relation to the values of the goyim.)
11. We shall replace the money markets by grandiose government
credit institutions, the object of which will be to fix the price of industrial
values in accordance with government views. These institutions will be
in a position to fling upon the market five hundred millions of industrial
paper in one day, or to buy up for the same amount. In this way all industrial
undertakings will come into dependence upon us. You may imagine for yourselves
what immense power we shall thereby secure for ourselves....
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 22
POWER OF GOLD
The secret of what is coming ñ Mysticism of the
new authority and the reverent fear of the people
1. In all that has so far been reported by me to you,
I have endeavoured to depict with care the secret of what is coming, of
what is past, and of what is going on now, rushing into the flood of the
great events coming already in the near future, the secret of our relations
to the goyim and of financial operations. On this subject there remains
still a little for me to add.
2. In our hands is the greatest power of our day ñ gold*:
in two days we can procure from our storehouses any quantity we may please.
* Matthew 6:24 No man
can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one, and love the other;
or else he will hold to the one, and despise the other. Ye cannot serve
God and materialism.
3. Surely there is no need to seek further proof that
our rule is predestined by God? Surely we shall not fail with such wealth
to prove that all that evil which for so many centuries we have had to
commit has served at the end of ends the cause of true well-being ñ the
bringing of everything into order? (See Matthew 6:24 quoted above) Though
it be even by the exercise of some violence, yet all the same it will be
established. We shall contrive to prove that we are benefactors who have
restored to the rent and mangled earth the true good and also freedom of
the person, and therewith we shall enable it to be enjoyed in peace and
quiet, with proper dignity of relations, on the condition, of course, of
strict observance of the laws established by us. We shall make plain therewith
that freedom does not consist in dissipation and in the right of unbridled
license any more than the dignity and force of a man do not consist in
the right of everyone to promulgate destructive principles in the nature
of freedom of conscience, equality and a like, that freedom of the person
in no wise consists in the right to agitate oneself and others by abominable
speeches before disorderly mobs, and that true freedom consists in the
inviolability of the person who honourably and strictly observes all the
laws of life in common, that human dignity is wrapped up in consciousness
of the rights and also of the absence of rights of each, and not wholly
and solely in fantastic imaginings about the subject of one's ego.
4. One authority will be glorious because it will be all-powerful,
will rule and guide, and not muddle along after leaders and orators shrieking
themselves hoarse with senseless words which they call great principles
and which are nothing else, to speak honestly, but utopian....Our authority
will be the crown of order, and in that is included the whole happiness
of man. The aureole of this authority will inspire a mystical bowing of
the knee before it and a reverent fear before it of all the peoples. True
force makes no terms with any right, not even with that of God: none dare
come near to it so as to take so much as a span from it away.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 23
INSTILLING OBEDIENCE
Cutting down of luxury goods ñ The supreme lord
to replace all existing rulers
1. That the peoples may become accustomed to obedience
it is necessary to inculcate lessons of humility and therefore to reduce
the production of articles of luxury. By this we shall improve morals which
have been debased by emulation in the sphere of luxury. We shall re-establish
small master production which will mean laying a mine under the private
capital of manufacturers. This is indispensable also for the reason that
manufacturers on the grand scale often move, though not always consciously,
the thoughts of the masses in directions against the government. A people
of small masters knows nothing of unemployment and this binds him closely
with existing order, and consequently with the firmness of authority. For
us its part will have been played out the moment authority is transferred
into our hands. Drunkenness also will be prohibited by law and punishable
as a crime against humanness of man who is turned into a brute under the
influence of alcohol.
2. Subjects, I repeat once more, give blind obedience
only to the strong hand which is absolutely independent of them, for in
it they feel the sword of defence and support against social scourges....What
do they want with an angelic spirit in a king? What they have to see in
him is the personification of force and power.
3. The supreme lord who will replace all now existing
rulers, dragging in their existence among societies demoralised by us,
societies that have denied even the authority of God, from whose midst
breaks out on all sides the fire of anarchy, must first of all proceed
to quench this all-devouring flame. Therefore he will be obliged to kill
off those existing societies, though he should drench them with his own
blood, that he may resurrect them again in the form of regularly organised
troops, fighting consciously with every kind of infection that may cover
the body of the State with sores.
4. This Chosen One of God is chosen from above to demolish
the senseless forces moved by instinct and not reason, by brutishness and
humanness. These forces now triumph in manifestations of robbery and every
kind of violence under the mask of principles of freedom and rights. They
have overthrown all forms of social order to erect, on the ruins, the throne
of the King of the Jews; but their part will be played out the moment he
enters into his kingdom. Then it will be necessary to sweep them away from
his path, on which must be left no knot, no splinter.
5. Then will it be possible for us to say to the peoples
of the world: Give thanks to God and bow the knee before him who bears
on his front the seal of the predestination of man, to which God Himself
has led His star that none other but Him might free us from all the before-mentioned
forces and evils.
[Return to top]
PROTOCOL 24
QUALITIES OF THE RULER
Selecting and training the seed of David
1. I pass now to the method of confirming the dynastic
roots of king David to the last strata of the earth.
2. This confirmation will first and foremost be included
in that which to this day has rested the force of conservatism, by our
learned elders, of the conduct of the affairs of the world, in the directing
of the education of thought of all humanity.
N.B. http://i.am/jah/emmau2.htm
3. Certain members of the seed of David will prepare the
kings and their heirs, selecting not by right of heritage but by eminent
capacities, inducting them into the most secret mysteries of the political,
into schemes of government, but providing always that none may come to
knowledge of the secrets. The object of this mode of action is that all
may know that government cannot be entrusted to those who have not been
inducted into the secret places of its art....
4. To these persons only will be taught the practical
application of the aforenamed plans by comparison of the experiences of
many centuries, all the observations on the politico-economic moves and
social sciences ñ in a word, all the spirit of laws which have been unshakeably
established by nature herself for the regulation of the relations of humanity.
5. Direct heirs will often be set aside from ascending
the throne, if, in their time of training, they exhibit frivolity, softness
and other qualities that are the ruin of authority, which render them incapable
of governing and in themselves dangerous for kingly office.
6. Only those who are unconditionally capable for firm,
even if it be to cruelty, direct rule will receive the reins of rule from
our learned elders.
John 19:19 And Pilate wrote a title, and put [it]
on the cross. And the writing was, JESUS NAZIR THE KING OF THE JEWS.
19:20 This title then read many of the Jews: for
the place where Jesus was crucified was nigh to the city: and it was written
in Hebrew, [and] Greek, [and] Latin.
19:21 Then said the chief priests of the Jews to
Pilate, Write not, The King of the Jews; but that he said, I am King of
the Jews.
19:22 Pilate answered, What I have written I have
written.
7. In case of falling sick with weakness of will or other
form of incapacity, kings must, by law, hand over the reins of rule to
new and capable handsÖ.
8. The king's plan of action for the current moment, and
all the more so for the future, will be unknown, even to those who are
called his closest counsellors.
9. Only the king and the three who stood sponsor for him
will know what is coming.
10. In the person of the king who with unbending will
is master of himself and of humanity all will discern as it were fate with
its mysterious ways. None will know what the king wishes to attain by his
dispositions, and therefore none will dare to stand across an unknown path.
11. It is understood that the brain reservoir of the king
must correspond in capacity to the plan of government it has to contain.
It is for this reason that he will ascend the throne not otherwise than
after examination of his mind by the aforesaid learned elders.
Thereby the Elders and Sanhedrin put themselves above
their puppet-king and control him, which is why, once they realised that
they could not control Jesus, who was born* King, they rejected
and crucified him.
* Matthew 2:2 Saying, Where is he that has been BORN
King of the Jews? for we saw his "Star" in the East, and are come to worship
him.
12. That the people may know and love their king, it is
indispensable for him to converse in the market-places with his people.
This ensures the necessary clinching of the two forces which are now divided
one from another by us by the terror.
13. This terror was indispensable for us till the time
comes for both these forces separately to fall under our influence.
14. The king of the Jews must not be at the mercy of his
passions, and especially of sensuality: on no side of his character must
he give brute instincts power over his mind. Sensuality worse than all
else disorganises the capacities of the mind and clearness of views, distracting
the thoughts to the worst and most brutal side of human activity.
15. The prop of humanity in the person of the supreme
lord of all the world of the holy seed of David must sacrifice to his people
all personal inclinations.
16. Our supreme lord must be of an exemplary irreproachable
mind.
Signed by the representatives of Zion,
of the 33rd degree.
These Protocols could not possibly have been written by
any man or men, only by Satan himself with the help of his Synagogue, referred
to by Christ in Revelation 2:9 I know thy works,
and tribulation, and poverty, (but thou art rich) and [I know] the blasphemy
of them which say they are Jews, and are NOT, but [are] (Idumeans)
the Synagogue of Satan.
And now what do we do???
Read "The Way home or face
The Fire", if you would like to find out.